Selected quad for the lemma: cause_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
cause_n call_v day_n lord_n 3,361 5 4.2745 3 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A51699 A cloud of witnesses, or, The sufferers mirrour made up of the swanlike-songs, and other choice passages of several martyrs and confessors to the sixteenth century, in their treatises, speeches, letters, prayers, &c. in their prisons, or exiles, at the bar, or stake, &c. / collected out of the ecclesiastical histories of Eusebius, Fox, Fuller, Petrie, Scotland, and Mr. Samuel Ward's Life of faith in death, &c. and alphabetically disposed by T.M., M.A.; Cloud of witnesses. Part 1 Mall, Thomas, b. 1629 or 30.; Flavel, John, 1630?-1691. 1665 (1665) Wing M329; ESTC R21709 379,698 602

There are 29 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

it_o be_v no_o arrogancy_n nor_o presumption_n in_o any_o man_n to_o burden_n god_n as_o it_o be_v with_o his_o promise_n and_o of_o duty_n to_o claim_v and_o challenge_v his_o aid_n help_v and_o assistance_n in_o all_o our_o peril_n danger_n and_o distress_n call_v upon_o he_o not_o in_o the_o confidence_n of_o our_o own_o godliness_n but_o in_o the_o trust_n of_o his_o own_o promise_n make_v in_o christ._n his_o word_n can_v lie_v 50._o call_v upon_o i_o in_o the_o day_n of_o trouble_n and_o i_o will_v hear_v thou_o and_o thou_o shall_v praise_v i_o i_o answer_v the_o enemy_n also_o on_o this_o manner_n i_o be_o a_o sinner_n and_o therefore_o unworthy_a to_o be_v a_o witness_n of_o this_o truth_n what_o then_o must_v i_o deny_v his_o word_n because_o i_o be_o not_o worthy_a to_o pro●ess_v it_o what_o bring_v i_o to_o pass_v in_o so_o do_v but_o add_v sin_n to_o sin_n what_o be_v great_a sin_n then_o to_o deny_v the_o truth_n of_o christ_n gospel_n he_o that_o be_v ashamed_a of_o i_o or_o of_o my_o word_n say_v christ_n of_o he_o also_o will_v i_o be_v ashamed_a before_o my_o father_n and_o all_o his_o angel_n i_o may_v also_o by_o the_o same_o reason_n forbear_v to_o do_v any_o of_o god_n commandment_n when_o i_o be_o provoke_v to_o pray_v the_o enemy_n may_v say_v to_o i_o i_o be_o not_o worthy_a to_o pray_v therefore_o i_o shall_v not_o pray_v etc._n etc._n when_o the_o bishop_n come_v to_o lichfield_n he_o persuade_v i_o to_o be_v a_o member_n of_o his_o church_n which_o have_v continue_v so_o many_o year_n as_o for_o our_o church_n as_o he_o call_v it_o it_o be_v not_o know_v he_o say_v but_o late_o in_o king_n edward_n time_n i_o profess_v myself_o to_o be_v a_o member_n of_o that_o church_n say_v i_o that_o be_v build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o head_n cornerstone_n and_o this_o church_n have_v be_v from_o the_o beginning_n say_v i_o though_o it_o bear_v no_o glorious_a show_n before_o the_o world_n be_v ever_o for_o the_o most_o part_n under_o the_o cross_n and_o affliction_n contemn_v despise_a and_o persecute_v the_o bishop_n contend_v on_o the_o other_o side_n that_o they_o be_v the_o church_n so_o cry_v all_o the_o clergy_n against_o the_o prophet_n of_o jerusalem_n say_v i_o say_v the_o church_n the_o church_n etc._n etc._n so_o much_o out_o of_o mr._n glover_n choice_a letter_n 427._o after_o he_o be_v condemn_v his_o heart_n be_v lumpish_a and_o desolate_a of_o all_o spiritual_a consolation_n whereupon_o fear_v lest_o the_o lord_n have_v utter_o withdraw_v he_o make_v his_o moan_n to_o mr._n austin_n bernher_n his_o familiar_a friend_n tell_v he_o how_o he_o have_v pray_v night_n and_o day_n to_o god_n and_o yet_o have_v no_o sense_n of_o comfort_n from_o he_o the_o minister_n desire_v he_o to_o wait_v patient_o the_o lord_n leisure_n and_o howsoever_o his_o present_a feeling_n be_v yet_o see_v his_o cause_n be_v just_a he_o exhort_v he_o constant_o to_o stick_v to_o the_o same_o and_o to_o play_v the_o man_n not_o doubt_v but_o the_o lord_n in_o his_o good_a time_n will_v visit_v he_o and_o satisfy_v his_o desire_n with_o plenty_n of_o consolation_n whereof_o say_v mr._n bernher_o he_o be_v right_o certain_a and_o sure_a and_o therefore_o desire_v he_o whenever_o any_o such_o feel_n of_o god_n heavenly_a mercy_n shall_v begin_v to_o touch_v his_o heart_n that_o then_o he_o shall_v show_v some_o signification_n thereof_o the_o next_o day_n as_o he_o be_v go_v to_o the_o place_n of_o his_o martyrdom_n and_o be_v come_v within_o light_n of_o the_o stake_n although_o all_o the_o night_n before_o pray_v for_o strength_n and_o courage_n he_o can_v feel_v none_o sudden_o he_o be_v so_o mighty_o replenish_v with_o god_n holy_a comfort_n and_o heavenly_a joy_n that_o he_o cry_v out_o clap_v his_o hand_n to_o austin_n and_o say_v in_o these_o word_n austin_n he_o be_v come_v he_o be_v come_v etc._n etc._n and_o that_o with_o such_o joy_n and_o alacrity_n as_o one_o seem_v rather_o to_o be_v rise_v from_o some_o deadly_a danger_n to_o liberty_n of_o life_n then_o as_o one_o pass_v out_o of_o the_o world_n by_o any_o pain_n of_o death_n godfrey_n when_o one_o call_v godfrey_n de_fw-fr h●mmele_n heretic_n 157._o he_o say_v no_o heretic_n but_o a_o unprofitable_a servant_n yet_o willing_a to_o die_v for_o his_o lord_n and_o reckon_v this_o death_n no_o death_n but_o a_o life_n goodman_n mr._n christopher_n goodman_n 1558._o a_o exile_a minister_n of_o christ_n in_o queen_n mary_n day_n declare_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o the_o then_o misery_n in_o england_n and_o the_o only_a way_n to_o remedy_v the_o same_o write_v as_o follow_v from_o geneva_n if_o all_o in_o who_o the_o people_n shall_v look_v for_o comfort_n etc._n be_v altogether_o decline_v from_o god_n as_o indeed_o they_o appear_v to_o be_v at_o this_o present_a time_n in_o england_n without_o all_o fear_n of_o his_o majesty_n or_o pity_n upon_o their_o brethren_n then_o assure_v yourselves_o dear_a brethren_n and_o servant_n of_o god_n there_o can_v be_v no_o better_a counsel_n nor_o more_o comfortable_a or_o present_a remedy_n which_o you_o shall_v prove_v true_a if_o god_n grant_v you_o his_o spirit_n and_o grace_n to_o follow_v it_o then_o in_o continual_a and_o daily_a invocation_n of_o his_o name_n to_o rest_v whole_o and_o only_o upon_o he_o make_v he_o your_o shield_n buckler_z and_o refuge_n who_o have_v so_o promise_v to_o be_v to_o all_o they_o that_o be_v oppress_v and_o depend_v upon_o he_o to_o do_v nothing_o command_v against_o god_n and_o your_o conscience_n prefer_v at_o all_o time_n the_o will_n of_o god_n to_o the_o will_n of_o man_n say_v and_o answer_v to_o all_o manner_n of_o person_n this_o god_n have_v command_v this_o we_o must_v do_v that_o god_n have_v forbid_v that_o we_o will_v not_o do_v if_o you_o will_v rob_v we_o and_o spoil_v we_o for_o do_v the_o lord_n will_v to_o the_o lord_n must_v you_o make_v answer_n and_o not_o to_o we_o for_o his_o good_n they_o be_v and_o not_o we_o if_o you_o will_v imprison_v we_o behold_v you_o be_v oppressor_n if_o you_o will_v hang_v we_o or_o burn_v we_o behold_v you_o be_v murderer_n of_o they_o which_o fear_v the_o lord_n and_o for_o our_o part_n if_o you_o take_v from_o we_o this_o vile_a and_o corruptible_a life_n we_o be_v sure_o the_o lord_n will_v grant_v it_o we_o again_o with_o joy_n and_o immortality_n both_o of_o soul_n and_o body_n if_o god_n give_v you_o grace_n to_o make_v this_o or_o the_o like_a answer_n and_o strength_n to_o contemn_v their_o tyranny_n you_o may_v be_v sure_a to_o find_v unspeakable_a comfort_n and_o quietness_n of_o conscience_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o your_o danger_n and_o great_a rage_n of_o satan_n and_o thus_o bold_o confess_v christ_n your_o saviour_n before_o man_n as_o by_o the_o example_n of_o thousand_o of_o your_o brethren_n before_o your_o face_n god_n do_v merciful_o encourage_v you_o you_o may_v with_o all_o hope_n and_o patience_n wait_v for_o the_o joyful_a confession_n of_o christ_n again_o 218._o before_o his_o father_n and_o angel_n in_o heaven_n that_o you_o be_v his_o obedient_a and_o dear_o belove_a servant_n be_v also_o assure_v of_o this_o that_o if_o it_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n to_o have_v you_o any_o long_a to_o remain_v in_o this_o miserable_a world_n that_o then_o his_o providence_n be_v so_o careful_a over_o you_o and_o present_a with_o you_o that_o no_o man_n or_o power_n can_v take_v away_o your_o life_n from_o you_o nor_o touch_v your_o body_n any_o far_a than_o your_o lord_n and_o god_n will_v permit_v they_o which_o neither_o shall_v be_v augment_v for_o your_o plain_a confession_n nor_o yet_o diminish_v for_o keep_v of_o silence_n for_o nothing_o come_v to_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n by_o hap_n or_o chance_n who_o hair_n of_o their_o head_n be_v number_v whereof_o if_o you_o be_v so_o assure_v as_o you_o ought_v there_o can_v be_v nothing_o that_o shall_v make_v you_o to_o shrink_v from_o the_o lord_n if_o they_o do_v cast_v you_o into_o prison_n with_o joseph_n the_o lord_n will_v deliver_v you_o if_o they_o cast_v you_o to_o wild_a beast_n and_o lion_n as_o they_o do_v d●niel_n you_o shall_v be_v preserve_v 219._o if_o into_o the_o sea_n with_o jonas_n you_o shall_v not_o be_v drown_v or_o into_o the_o dirty_a dungeon_n with_o jeremy_n you_o shall_v be_v deliver_v or_o into_o the_o fiery_a furnace_n with_o shadrach_n meshach_n and_o a●ednego_n yet_o shall_v not_o be_v consume_v contrariwise_o if_o it_o be_v his_o good_a pleasure_n that_o you_o shall_v glorify_v his_o holy_a name_n by_o your_o death_n what_o great_a thing_n have_v you_o lose_v change_a death_n for_o life_n
of_o the_o common_a law_n the_o common_a quie●_n shall_v be_v disturb_v how_o can_v you_o say_v you_o will_v be_v the_o queen_n true_a subject_n whenas_o you_o do_v open_o profess_v you_o will_v not_o keep_v her_o law_n answ._n i_o grant_v it_o to_o be_v reasonable_a that_o he_o that_o ●y_a word_n and_o gentleness_n can_v be_v make_v to_o yield_v to_o that_o which_o be_v right_a and_o good_a he_o that_o will_v not_o be_v subject_a to_o god_n word_n shall_v be_v punish_v by_o the_o law_n these_o thing_n ought_v to_o take_v place_n against_o he_o who_o refuse_v to_o do_v that_o be_v right_a and_o just_a according_a to_o true_a godliness_n not_o against_o he_o which_o can_v bear_v superstition_n quiet_o but_o do_v hate_n and_o detost_a from_o his_o heart_n such_o kind_n of_o proceed_n and_o that_o for_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o name_n of_o god_n whosoever_o love_n their_o country_n in_o truth_n i._n e._n in_o god_n they_o will_v always_o judge_v if_o at_o any_o time_n the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o man_n be_v contrary_a that_o a_o man_n ought_v rather_o to_o obey_v god_n then_o man_n 440._o and_o they_o that_o think_v otherwise_o and_o pretend_v a_o love_n to_o their_o country_n forasmuch_o as_o they_o make_v their_o country_n to_o fight_v as_o it_o be_v against_o god_n in_o who_o consist_v the_o only_a stay_n of_o that_o country_n such_o be_v to_o be_v judge_v most_o deadly_a enemy_n and_o traitor_n to_o their_o country_n satan_n indeed_o have_v ever_o this_o dart_n in_o readiness_n to_o hurl_v against_o his_o adversary_n to_o accuse_v they_o of_o sedition_n that_o he_o may_v bring_v they_o if_o he_o can_v in_o danger_n of_o the_o high_a power_n thus_o ahab_n say_v unto_o elias_n be_v thou_o he_o that_o trouble_v israel_n the_o false_a prophet_n complain_v of_o jeremy_n to_o their_o prince_n that_o his_o word_n be_v seditious_a and_o not_o to_o be_v suffer_v the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n accuse_v christ_n as_o a_o seditious_a person_n and_o one_o that_o speak_v against_o caesar._n do_v not_o they_o at_o the_o last_o cry_n if_o you_o let_v this_o man_n go_v you_o be_v not_o caesar_n friend_n thus_o the_o orator_n tertullus_n accuse_v paul_n before_o felix_n the_o deputy_n we_o have_v find_v this_o man_n say_v he_o a_o pestilent_a fellow_n and_o a_o stirrer_n up_o of_o sedition_n unto_o all_o the_o jew_n in_o the_o whole_a world_n but_o be_v these_o indeed_o seditious_a person_n god_n forbid_v but_o they_o be_v of_o man_n false_o accuse_v and_o wherefore_o i_o pray_v you_o but_o because_o the_o reprove_v before_o the_o people_n their_o guile_n superstition_n and_o deceit_n a_o man_n indeed_o aught_o to_o obey_v his_o prince_n but_o in_o the_o lord_n and_o never_o against_o the_o lord_n for_o he_o that_o know_o obey_v his_o prince_n against_o god_n do_v not_o a_o duty_n to_o the_o prince_n but_o be_v a_o deceiver_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o a_o helper_n to_o he_o to_o work_v his_o own_o destruction_n he_o be_v also_o unjust_a which_o give_v not_o to_o the_o prince_n that_o be_v the_o prince_n and_o to_o god_n that_o be_v go_n hitherto_o you_o see_v good_a father_n how_o i_o have_v in_o word_n only_o make_v a_o flourish_n before_o the_o fight_n which_o i_o short_o look_v for_o and_o how_o i_o have_v begin_v to_o prepare_v certain_a kind_n of_o weapon_n to_o fight_v against_o the_o adversary_n of_o christ._n and_o here_o methinks_v i_o see_v you_o sudden_o lift_v up_o your_o head_n to_o heaven_n after_o your_o manner_n and_o then_o look_v upon_o i_o with_o your_o prophetical_a countenance_n and_o speak_v thus_o unto_o i_o trust_v not_o my_o son_n i_o beseech_v you_o vouchsafe_v i_o the_o honour_n of_o this_o name_n for_o in_o so_o do_v i_o shall_v think_v myself_o both_o honour_v and_o love_v of_o you_o trust_v not_o to_o these_o word-weapon_n for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v not_o in_o word_n but_o in_o power_n remember_v always_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o imagine_v aforehand_o what_o and_o how_o you_o will_v speak_v for_o it_o shall_v be_v give_v you_o even_o in_o that_o same_o hour_n what_o you_o shall_v speak_v mat._n 10._o for_o it_o be_v not_o you_o that_o speak_v but_o the_o spirit_n of_o your_o father_n that_o speak_v in_o you_o mar._n 11._o i_o pray_v you_o therefore_o father_n pray_v for_o i_o that_o i_o may_v cast_v my_o whole_a care_n on_o he_o and_o trust_v on_o he_o in_o all_o peril_n for_o i_o know_v and_o be_o sure_o persuade_v that_o whatsoever_o i_o can_v think_v aforehand_o be_v nothing_o except_o he_o assist_v i_o with_o his_o spirit_n when_o the_o time_n be_v 441._o pray_v that_o i_o may_v out_o of_o a_o true_a faith_n say_v with_o david_n i_o will_v not_o trust_v in_o my_o bow_n and_o it_o be_v not_o my_o sword_n that_o shall_v save_v i_o psal._n 44._o for_o he_o have_v no_o pleasure_n in_o the_o strength_n of_o a_o horse_n etc._n etc._n but_o the_o lord_n delight_v in_o they_o that_o fear_v he_o and_o put_v their_o trust_n in_o his_o mercy_n i_o beseech_v you_o pray_v pray_v pray_v that_o i_o may_v enter_v this_o fight_n only_o in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n in_o his_o letter_n to_o mr._n bradford_n and_o his_o fellow-prisoner_n how_o joyful_a it_o be_v to_o we_o to_o hear_v the_o report_n of_o dr._n tailor_n and_o of_o his_o godly_a confession_n etc._n etc._n i_o assure_v you_o it_o be_v hard_o for_o i_o to_o express_v bless_a be_v god_n which_o be_v and_o be_v the_o giver_n of_o that_o and_o of_o all_o godly_a strength_n and_o stomach_n in_o the_o time_n of_o adversity_n 442._o it_o be_v not_o the_o slanderer_n evil_a tongue_n but_o a_o man_n evil_a deed_n that_o can_v with_o god_n defile_v a_o man_n and_o therefore_o with_o god_n grace_n you_o shall_v never_o have_v cause_n to_o doubt_v but_o that_o we_o will_v continue_v etc._n etc._n sir_n bless_a be_v god_n with_o all_o our_o evil_a report_n grudge_n and_o restraint_n we_o be_v merry_a in_o god_n and_o all_o our_o cure_n and_o care_n be_v and_o shall_v be_v by_o god_n grace_n to_o please_v and_o serve_v he_o of_o who_o we_o look_v and_o hope_n after_o these_o temporal_a and_o momentary_a misery_n to_o have_v eternal_a joy_n and_o perpetual_a felicity_n with_o abraham_n etc._n etc._n through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n in_o his_o letter_n to_o his_o cousin_n i_o can_v do_v no_o less_o then_o lament_v their_o case_n who_o for_o fear_n of_o trouble_n or_o loss_n of_o good_n will_v do_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o world_n those_o thing_n they_o know_v and_o be_v assure_v be_v contrary_a to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v assdr_v their_o end_n will_v be_v so_o pitiful_a without_o speedy_a repentance_n that_o i_o tremble_v to_o think_v of_o it_o alas_o such_o as_o shall_v in_o this_o dangerous_a time_n have_v give_v you_o and_o i_o comfortable_a instruction_n have_v persuade_v we_o to_o follow_v i_o lament_v to_o rehearse_v it_o superstitious_a idolatry_n yea_o and_o the_o worst_a of_o all_o be_v they_o seek_v to_o prove_v it_o by_o scripture_n the_o lord_n for_o his_o mercy_n turn_v their_o heart_n amen_n in_o another_o letter_n to_o mr._n bradford_n 444._o oh_o dear_a brother_n see_v the_o time_n be_v now_o come_v wherein_o it_o please_v the_o heavenly_a father_n for_o christ_n our_o saviour_n his_o sake_n to_o call_v upon_o you_o and_o to_o bid_v you_o come_v happy_a be_v you_o that_o ever_o you_o be_v bear_v thus_o to_o be_v find_v awake_a at_o the_o lord_n call_v if_o it_o be_v not_o the_o place_n that_o sanctisi_v the_o man_n but_o the_o holy_a man_n do_v by_o christ_n sanctify_v the_o place_n then_o happy_a and_o holy_a shall_v be_v that_o place_n where_o in_o thou_o shall_v suffer_v and_o which_o shall_v be_v sprinkle_v over_o with_o thy_o ash_n in_o christ_n cause_n all_o thy_o country_n may_v rejoice_v of_o thou_o that_o it_o ever_o bring_v forth_o such_o a_o one_o which_o will_v render_v his_o life_n again_o in_o his_o cause_n of_o who_o he_o have_v receive_v it_o we_o do_v look_v now_o every_o day_n when_o we_o shall_v be_v call_v on_o bless_a be_v god_n i_o ween_v i_o be_o the_o weak_a many_o way_n of_o our_o company_n and_o yet_o i_o thank_v our_o lord_n god_n and_o heavenly_a father_n by_o christ_n that_o since_o i_o hear_v of_o our_o dear_n brother_n rogers_n his_o depart_n and_o stout_a confession_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o truth_n even_o unto_o death_n my_o heart_n bless_a be_v god_n rejoice_v of_o it_o that_o since_o that_o time_n i_o never_o feel_v any_o lumpish_a heaviness_n in_o my_o heart_n as_o i_o grant_v i_o have_v feel_v sometime_o before_o oh_o good_a brother_n bless_a be_v god_n in_o thou_o and_o bless_v be_v the_o time_n that_o ever_o i_o know_v thou_o in_o his_o
good_a counsel_n 830._o that_o they_o may_v become_v good_a catholic_n sir_n say_v she_o they_o have_v a_o better_a instructor_n than_o i_o for_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v teach_v they_o i_o hope_v who_o i_o trust_v will_v not_o suffer_v they_o to_o err_v thereupon_o the_o knight_n say_v it_o be_v time_n to_o look_v to_o such_o heretic_n sir_n say_v she_o with_o that_o which_o you_o call_v herelie_o do_v i_o worship_v my_o lord_n god_n then_o i_o perceive_v say_v tyrrel_n you_o will_v burn_v with_o the_o rest_n for_o company_n no_o sir_n say_v she_o not_o for_o company_n but_o for_o my_o christ_n sake_n if_o so_o i_o be_v compel_v and_o i_o hope_v in_o his_o mercy_n if_o he_o call_v i_o to_o it_o he_o will_v enable_v i_o to_o bear_v it_o to_o try_v she_o tyrrel_n burn_v the_o wrist_n of_o her_o hand_n with_o a_o candle_n till_o the_o very_a sinew_n crack_v asunder_o say_v often_o to_o she_o what_o whore_n will_v not_o thou_o cry_v to_o which_o she_o answer_v that_o she_o have_v no_o cause_n she_o thank_v god_n but_o rather_o to_o rejoice_v you_o say_v she_o have_v more_o cause_n to_o weep_v than_o i_o if_o you_o consider_v the_o matter_n well_o at_o last_o she_o say_v sir_n have_v you_o do_v what_o you_o will_v do_v he_o answer_v yea_o and_o if_o thou_o th●nk_v it_o be_v not_o well_o then_o mend_v it_o she_o reply_v mend_v it_o nay_o the_o lord_n mend_v you_o and_o give_v you_o repentance_n if_o it_o be_v his_o will_n and_o now_o if_o you_o think_v it_o good_a to_o begin_v at_o the_o foot_n and_o burn_v the_o head_n also_o she_o be_v ask_v by_o one_o how_o she_o can_v abide_v the_o painful_a burn_a of_o her_o hand_n she_o say_v at_o first_o it_o be_v some_o grief_n to_o she_o but_o afterward_o the_o long_o she_o burn_v the_o less_o she_o feel_v even_o well_o near_o none_o at_o all_o almondus_fw-la my_o body_n die_v say_v a●ondus_n a_o via_fw-la my_o spirit_n live_v 159._o god_n kingdom_n abide_v ever_o god_n have_v now_o give_v i_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o all_o my_o de●●res_n alost_n 34._o francis_n d'_fw-fr alost_n a_o cutler_n in_o flanders_n be_v conduct_v to_o prison_n say_v now_o you_o have_v take_v i_o you_o think_v to_o deprive_v i_o of_o life_n and_o thereby_o to_o bring_v great_a damage_n to_o i_o but_o you_o be_v deceive_v for_o it_o be_v all_o one_o as_o if_o you_o take_v counter_n from_o i_o to_o fill_v my_o hand_n with_o a_o great_a sum_n of_o gold_n as_o he_o go_v to_o suffer_v he_o use_v that_o speech_n of_o the_o apostle_n st._n peter_n i_o must_v now_o short_o put_v off_o this_o my_o earthly_a tabernacle_n 2_o pet._n 1.10_o which_o the_o love_n of_o jesus_n my_o lord_n constrain_v i_o to_o do_v 2_o cor._n 5.14_o am●chus_n 141._o turn_v say_v he_o the_o other_o side_n also_o least_o raw_a flesh_n offend_v you_o ambrose_n 140._o i_o have_v not_o so_o live_v say_v he_o that_o i_o be_o ashamed_a to_o live_v long_o nor_o yet_o fear_v i_o death_n because_o i_o have_v a_o good_a lord_n to_o calignon_n valentinians_n eunuch_v threaten_v death_n he_o say_v well_o do_v you_o that_o which_o become_v a_o eunuch_n i_o will_v suffer_v that_o which_o become_v a_o bishop_n andrew_n 43._o when_o the_o proconsul_n threaten_v andrew_n the_o apostle_n with_o the_o cross_n if_o he_o leave_v not_o off_o his_o preach_n i_o will_v never_o say_v he_o have_v preach_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o cross_n if_o i_o have_v fear_v the_o suffering_n of_o the_o cross._n when_o he_o come_v to_o the_o cross_n on_o which_o he_o be_v to_o be_v crucify_v he_o say_v o_o cross_n most_o welcome_a and_o long_o look_v for_o with_o a_o willing_a mind_n joyful_o i_o come_v to_o thou_o be_v the_o scholar_n of_o he_o that_o do_v hang_v on_o thou_o 138._o welcome_a o_o christ_n long_v and_o look_v for_o i_o be_o the_o scholar_n of_o he_o that_o be_v crucify_v long_o have_v i_o covet_v to_o embrace_v thou_o in_o who_o i_o be_o what_o i_o be_o anvil_n frederick_n anvil_n of_o bearne_n 156._o to_o the_o friar_n that_o will_v he_o to_o call_v on_o the_o virgin_n mary_n three_o time_n repeat_v thy_o o_o lord_n be_v the_o kingdom_n thou_o be_v the_o power_n and_o glory_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o let_v we_o fight_v let_v we_o fight_v avaunt_o satan_n avaunt_o apprice_n bonner_n ask_v john_n apprice_n what_o he_o think_v of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n 700._o he_o answer_v the_o doctrine_n you_o teach_v be_v so_o agreeable_a to_o the_o world_n and_o embrace_v of_o the_o same_o that_o it_o can_v be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n ardley_n john_n ardley_n be_v urge_v by_o bonner_n to_o recant_v 253._o cry_v out_o if_o every_o hair_n of_o my_o head_n be_v a_o man_n i_o will_v suffer_v death_n for_o my_o religion_n be_v again_o solicit_v to_o recant_v no_o god_n forbid_v say_v he_o that_o i_o shall_v do_v so_o for_o than_o i_o shall_v lose_v my_o soul._n arethusius_n marcus_n arethusius_n have_v at_o the_o command_n of_o constantinus_n pull_v down_o a_o certain_a temple_n 128._o dedicate_v to_o idol_n and_o instead_o thereof_o build_v up_o a_o church_n where_o the_o christian_n may_v congregate_v under_o julianus_n he_o be_v beat_v cast_v into_o a_o filthy_a sink_n put_v into_o a_o basket_n anoint_v with_o honey_n and_o broth_n hang_v abroad_o in_o the_o heat_n of_o the_o sun_n as_o meat_n for_o wasp_n to_o feed_v on_o hereby_o it_o be_v hope_v he_o will_v be_v enforce_v either_o to_o build_v up_o again_o the_o temple_n which_o he_o have_v destroy_v or_o else_o give_v so_o much_o money_n as_o will_v pay_v for_o the_o build_n of_o the_o same_o this_o good_a man_n while_o he_o hang_v in_o the_o basket_n do_v not_o only_o conceal_v his_o pain_n but_o deride_v those_o wicked_a instrument_n of_o his_o torment_n call_v they_o bafe_a low_a terrene_a people_n and_o himself_o exalt_v and_o set_v on_o high_a when_o they_o tell_v he_o they_o will_v be_v content_v with_o a_o small_a sum_n of_o money_n from_o he_o he_o say_v it_o be_v as_o great_a a_o wickedness_n to_o confer_v one_o halfpenny_n in_o case_n of_o impiety_n as_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v bestow_v the_o whole_a askew_n mrs._n jane_n askew_n be_v call_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o winchester_n a_o parrot_n tell_v he_o that_o she_o be_v ready_a to_o suffer_v not_o only_o his_o rebuke_n but_o all_o thing_n that_o shall_v follow_v beside_o yea_o and_o all_o that_o glad_o to_o her_o confession_n in_o newgate_n she_o thus_o subscribe_v write_v by_o i_o jane_n askew_n who_o neither_o wish_n death_n nor_o fear_v its_o might_n and_o as_o merry_a as_o one_o bind_v towards_o heaven_n in_o her_o confession_n of_o her_o faith_n she_o say_v though_o god_n have_v give_v i_o the_o bread_n of_o adversity_n and_o the_o water_n of_o trouble_n yet_o not_o so_o much_o as_o my_o sin_n have_v deserve_v when_o nicholas_n sharton_n counsel_v she_o to_o recant_v as_o he_o have_v do_v she_o say_v it_o have_v be_v good_a for_o he_o never_o to_o have_v be_v bear_v in_o a_o answer_n to_o a_o letter_n of_o mr._n lacell_n she_o write_v thus_o o_o friend_n most_o dear_o belove_v in_o god_n i_o marvel_n not_o a_o little_a what_o shall_v m●ve_v you_o to_o judge_v in_o i_o so_o slender_a a_o faith_n as_o to_o fear_v death_n which_o be_v the_o end_n of_o all_o misery_n in_o the_o lord_n i_o desire_v you_o not_o to_o believe_v of_o i_o such_o weakness_n for_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o god_n will_v perform_v his_o work_n in_o i_o like_a as_o he_o have_v begin_v when_o wrisley_n lord_n chancellor_n send_v to_o her_o letter_n at_o the_o stake_n offer_v she_o the_o king_n pardon_v if_o she_o will_v recant_v she_o refuse_v once_o to_o look_v upon_o they_o give_v this_o answer_n that_o she_o come_v not_o thither_o to_o deny_v her_o lord_n and_o master_n attalus_n 340._o he_o answer_v to_o every_o question_n i_o be_o a_o christian_n be_v fire_v in_o a_o iron_n chain_n behold_v say_v he_o o_o you_o roman_n this_o be_v to_o eat_v man_n flesh_n which_o you_o false_o object_n to_o we_o christian_n audebert_n bless_a be_v god_n say_v anne_n audebert_n of_o orleans_n for_o this_o wedding_n girdle_n mean_v the_o chain_n my_o first_o marriage_n be_v on_o this_o lord_n day_n 154._o and_o now_o my_o second_o to_o my_o spouse_n and_o lord_n christ_n shall_v be_v on_o the_o same_o augustine_n bough_n fall_v off_o tree_n say_v he_o and_o stone_n out_o of_o building_n 140._o and_o why_o shall_v it_o seem_v strange_a that_o mortal_a man_n die_v austin_n austin_n a_o barber_n 124._o bear_v about_o hennegow_n in_o germany_n as_o he_o be_v lead_v to_o execution_n be_v desire_v by_o a_o gentleman_n to_o have_v pity_n upon_o himself_o and_o if_o he_o will_v not_o
my_o witness_n that_o i_o never_o preach_v christ_n jesus_n in_o contempt_n of_o any_o man_n neither_o mind_n i_o at_o any_o time_n to_o present_v myself_o to_o that_o place_n have_v either_o respect_n to_o my_o own_o private_a commodity_n or_o to_o the_o worldly_a hurt_n of_o any_o creature_n but_o to_o delay_v to_o preach_v to_o morrow_n unless_o the_o body_n be_v violent_o withhold_v i_o can_v in_o conscience_n for_o in_o this_o town_n and_o church_n god_n begin_v first_o to_o call_v i_o to_o the_o dignity_n of_o a_o preacher_n from_o the_o which_o i_o be_v reave_v by_o the_o tyranny_n of_o france_n and_o procurement_n of_o the_o bishop_n 147._o what_o torment_n i_o sustain_v in_o the_o galley_n etc._n etc._n be_v now_o no_o time_n to_o recite_v this_o only_a i_o can_v conceal_v which_o more_o then_o one_o have_v hear_v i_o say_v when_o absent_a from_o scotland_n that_o my_o assure_a hope_n be_v in_o open_a audience_n to_o preach_v at_o saint_n andrews_n before_o i_o depart_v this_o life_n and_o therefore_o my_o lord_n see_v that_o god_n above_o the_o expectation_n of_o many_o have_v bring_v my_o body_n to_o the_o same_o place_n where_o first_o i_o be_v call_v to_o the_o office_n of_o a_o preacher_n and_o from_o the_o which_o i_o be_v most_o unjust_o remove_v i_o beseech_v your_o honour_n not_o to_o stop_v i_o from_o present_v myself_o unto_o my_o brethren_n and_o as_o for_o the_o fear_n of_o danger_n that_o may_v come_v to_o i_o let_v no_o man_n be_v solicitous_a for_o my_o life_n be_v in_o the_o custody_n of_o he_o who_o glory_n i_o seek_v and_o therefore_o i_o can_v so_o fear_v their_o boast_n or_o tyranny_n that_o i_o will_v cease_v from_o do_v my_o duty_n when_o of_o mercy_n he_o offer_v the_o occasion_n i_o desire_v not_o the_o hand_n of_o any_o man_n to_o defend_v i_o only_o i_o crave_v audience_n etc._n etc._n whereupon_o the_o lord_n be_v full_o content_a he_o shall_v preach_v and_o so_o he_o do_v upon_o the_o ejection_n of_o the_o buyer_n and_o seller_n forth_o of_o the_o temple_n apply_v the_o corruption_n that_o be_v then_o to_o the_o corruption_n that_o be_v in_o papistry_n and_o christ_n fact_n to_o the_o duty_n of_o those_o to_o who_o god_n give_v power_n and_o zeal_n to_o remove_v all_o monument_n of_o idolatry_n 206.207_o when_o the_o lord_n and_o those_o that_o favour_a reformation_n be_v drive_v from_o edinburg_n to_o sterling_n which_o be_v the_o time_n of_o their_o great_a trouble_n mr._n knox_n preach_v on_o psal._n 80.5.6_o 7_o 8._o in_o the_o sermon_n god_n in_o wisdom_n sometime_o suffer_v his_o choose_a flock_n to_o mockage_n and_o danger_n yea_o apparent_a destruction_n that_o they_o may_v feel_v the_o vehemency_n of_o god_n indignation_n that_o they_o may_v know_v how_o little_a strength_n be_v in_o themselves_o that_o they_o may_v leave_v a_o testimony_n to_o the_o generation_n follow_v 208._o as_o well_o of_o the_o malice_n of_o the_o devil_n against_o god_n people_n as_o of_o the_o marvellous_a work_n of_o god_n in_o preserve_v his_o little_a flock_n by_o far_o other_o mean_n than_o man_n can_v espy_v it_o be_v a_o great_a and_o sore_a temptation_n when_o god_n turn_v away_o his_o face_n from_o our_o prayer_n etc._n etc._n this_o temptation_n no_o flesh_n can_v overcome_v or_o abide_v unless_o the_o mighty_a spirit_n of_o god_n interpose_v as_o appear_v in_o saul_n when_o god_n will_v not_o hear_v he_o the_o difference_n between_o the_o elect_a and_o reprobate_n in_o this_o temptation_n be_v this_o the_o elect_n sustain_v by_o the_o secret_a power_n of_o god_n spirit_n still_o call_v upon_o god_n albeit_o he_o appear_v to_o contemn_v their_o prayer_n as_o jacob_n do_v etc._n etc._n but_o the_o reprobate_n be_v deny_v their_o request_n do_v cease_v to_o pray_v and_o contemn_v god_n and_o it_o may_v be_v seek_v to_o the_o devil_n for_o what_o they_o can_v obtain_v by_o god_n such_o be_v our_o tender_a delicacy_n and_o self-love_n of_o our_o own_o flesh_n that_o those_o thing_n which_o we_o light_o pass_v over_o in_o other_o we_o can_v great_o complain_v of_o if_o they_o touch_v ourselves_o 209._o when_o the_o sin_n of_o man_n be_v rebuke_v in_o general_a seldom_o be_v it_o that_o man_n descend_v within_o himself_o accuse_v and_o condemn_v in_o himself_o that_o which_o most_o displease_v god_n but_o rather_o he_o doubt_v that_o to_o be_v a_o cause_n which_o before_o god_n be_v no_o cause_n indeed_o as_o the_o israelite_n suppose_v the_o cause_n of_o their_o overthrow_n be_v because_o they_o have_v lift_v the_o sword_n against_o their_o brethren_n of_o benjamin_n and_o yet_o the_o express_a command_n that_o be_v give_v they_o do_v deliver_v they_o from_o all_o crime_n in_o that_o cause_n the_o true_a cause_n be_v their_o go_v to_o execute_v judgement_n against_o the_o wicked_a without_o repentance_n for_o their_o own_o former_a offence_n and_o defection_n from_o god_n and_o their_o trust_n in_o their_o own_o strength_n they_o be_v a_o great_a multitude_n and_o the_o other_o far_o inferior_a to_o they_o 210._o when_o we_o be_v a_o few_o etc._n etc._n we_o call_v upon_o god_n and_o take_v he_o for_o our_o protector_n defence_n and_o refuge_n among_o we_o we_o have_v no_o brag_n of_o multitude_n nor_o of_o our_o strength_n nor_o of_o our_o policy_n we_o do_v only_o sob_v to_o god_n to_o have_v respect_n to_o the_o equity_n of_o our_o cause_n and_o to_o the_o cruel_a pursuit_n of_o the_o tyrannical_a enemy_n but_o since_o that_o our_o number_n have_v be_v multiply_v and_o great_a one_o join_v with_o we_o nothing_o have_v be_v hear_v but_o this_o lord_n will_v bring_v these_o many_o hundred_o spear_n this_o man_n have_v the_o credit_n to_o persuade_v the_o country_n if_o this_o ear_n be_v we_o no_o man_n in_o such_o bound_n will_v trouble_v we_o thus_o we_o make_v flesh_n our_o arm._n it_o rest_v that_o we_o turn_v to_o the_o eternal_a our_o god_n who_o beat_v down_o to_o the_o death_n that_o he_o may_v raise_v up_o again_o to_o leave_v the_o remembrance_n of_o his_o wondrous_a deliverance_n to_o the_o praise_n of_o his_o own_o name_n which_o if_o we_o do_v unfeigned_o i_o no_o more_o doubt_n but_o that_o this_o our_o dolour_n confusion_n and_o fear_v shall_v be_v turn_v into_o joy_n honour_n and_o boldness_n then_o that_o god_n give_v victory_n to_o the_o israelite_n over_o the_o benjamite_n after_o that_o twice_o with_o ignominy_n they_o be_v repulse_v yea_o whatsoever_o shall_v become_v of_o we_o and_o our_o mortal_a carcase_n i_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o this_o cause_n in_o despite_n of_o satan_n shall_v prevail_v for_o it_o be_v the_o eternal_a truth_n of_o the_o eternal_a god_n it_o may_v be_v that_o god_n shall_v plague_v some_o 211._o for_o that_o they_o delight_v not_o in_o the_o truth_n albeit_o for_o worldly_a respect_n they_o seem_v to_o favour_v it_o yea_o god_n may_v take_v some_o of_o his_o dear_a child_n away_o before_o that_o their_o eye_n see_v great_a trouble_n but_o neither_o shall_v the_o one_o nor_o the_o other_o so_o hinder_v this_o action_n but_o in_o the_o end_n it_o shall_v triumph_v after_o the_o take_n of_o kinghorn_n 215._o at_o which_o time_n the_o queen_n regent_n blasphemous_o say_v where_o now_o be_v john_n knox_n his_o god_n my_o god_n be_v now_o strong_a than_o he_o even_o in_o fife_n mr._n knox_n preach_v a_o comfortable_a sermon_n 6._o on_o the_o danger_n wherein_o the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n when_o they_o be_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o sea_n and_o jesus_n upon_o the_o mountain_n exhort_v they_o not_o to_o faint_v but_o to_o row_v against_o the_o contrary_a blast_n till_o that_o jesus_n christ_n shall_v come_v for_o say_v he_o i_o be_o assure_o persuade_v that_o god_n will_v deliver_v we_o from_o this_o extreme_a trouble_n as_o that_o this_o be_v the_o gospel_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o i_o preach_v unto_o you_o this_o day_n the_o four_o watch_n be_v not_o yet_o come_v abide_v a_o little_a the_o boat_n shall_v be_v save_v and_o peter_n which_o have_v leave_v the_o boat_n shall_v not_o drown_v 218._o in_o his_o letter_n to_o sir_n william_n sicily_n secretary_n of_o state_n in_o england_n as_o from_o god_n you_o have_v receive_v life_n wisdom_n and_o honour_n etc._n etc._n so_o ought_v you_o whole_o to_o apply_v the_o same_o to_o the_o advancement_n of_o his_o glory_n 219._o etc._n etc._n which_o alas_o in_o time_n past_o you_o have_v not_o do_v for_o to_o the_o suppress_n of_o christ_n true_a evangel_n to_o the_o erect_n of_o idolatry_n and_o to_o the_o shed_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o god_n most_o dear_a child_n have_v you_o by_o silence_n consent_v and_o subscribe_v this_o your_o most_o horrible_a defection_n from_o the_o know_a truth_n and_o once_o profess_v etc._n etc._n he_o have_v not_o deal_v with_o you_o as_o with_o other_o
the_o truth_n the_o bitter_a pang_n of_o death_n etc._n etc._n to_o die_v in_o christ_n cause_n be_v a_o high_a honour_n 523._o to_o the_o which_o no_o man_n shall_v aspire_v but_o to_o who_o god_n vouchsafe_v that_o privilege_n for_o no_o man_n be_v allow_v to_o presume_v to_o take_v to_o himself_o any_o office_n of_o honour_n but_o he_o which_o be_v thereunto_o call_v of_o god_n 12._o john_n say_v well_o speak_v of_o they_o which_o have_v obtain_v the_o victory_n by_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o lamb_n and_o by_o the_o word_n of_o his_o testimony_n that_o they_o love_v not_o their_o life_n even_o unto_o death_n and_o our_o saviour_n christ_n say_v 16._o he_o that_o shall_v lose_v his_o life_n for_o my_o cause_n shall_v find_v it_o this_o manner_n of_o speech_n pertain_v not_o to_o one_o kind_n of_o christian_n as_o the_o worldly_a do_v wicked_o dream_v but_o to_o all_o that_o true_o pertain_v to_o christ_n for_o when_o christ_n have_v call_v unto_o he_o the_o multitude_n together_o with_o his_o disciple_n he_o say_v unto_o they_o mark_n he_o say_v not_o this_o unto_o his_o disciple_n or_o apostle_n only_o but_o unto_o all_o whosoever_o will_v follow_v i_o let_v he_o forsake_v or_o deny_v himself_o etc._n etc._n for_o whosoever_o will_n to_o save_v his_o life_n forsake_v i_o and_o my_o truth_n shall_v lose_v it_o and_o whosoever_o shall_v lose_v s._n etc._n etc._n whosoever_o shall_v ●e_v ashamed_a of_o i_o and_o my_o word_n i._n e._n to_o confess_v i_o and_o my_o gospel_n before_o this_o adulterous_a generation_n of_o he_o shall_v the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v ashamed_a etc._n etc._n know_v thou_o o_o man_n of_o god_n that_o all_o thing_n be_v ordain_v for_o the_o furtherance_n of_o thou_o towards_o thy_o salvation_n all_o thing_n say_v paul_n work_v with_o the_o good_a to_o goodness_n etc._n etc._n it_o be_v not_o as_o the_o wicked_a think_v that_o poverty_n adversity_n sickness_n tribulation_n yea_o painful_a death_n of_o the_o godly_a be_v token_n that_o god_n do_v not_o love_v they_o but_o even_o the_o clean_a contrary_n now_o thou_o o_o man_n of_o god_n for_o the_o lord_n sake_n let_v we_o not_o for_o the_o love_n of_o this_o life_n tarry_v here_o too_o long_o and_o be_v occasion_n of_o delay_n of_o that_o glorious_a consummation_n of_o all_o christ_n sufferer_n in_o hope_n and_o expectation_n whereof_o the_o former_a martyr_n have_v depart_v in_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o which_o also_o the_o live_v endue_v with_o god_n spirit_n ought_v so_o earnest_o to_o desire_v 22._o etc._n etc._n cry_v out_o come_v lord_n jesus_n come_v then_o shall_v our_o weak_a body_n be_v transfigure_v and_o make_v like_o to_o christ_n glorious_a body_n and_o then_o shall_v we_o see_v and_o have_v the_o unspeakable_a joy_n and_o fruition_n of_o the_o glorious_a majesty_n of_o our_o lord_n even_o as_o he_o be_v who_o or_o what_o then_o shall_v let_v we_o to_o jeopard_v yea_o to_o spend_v this_o life_n which_o we_o have_v here_o in_o christ_n cause_n in_o our_o lord_n god_n his_o cause_n o_o therefore_o thou_o man_n of_o god_n that_o be_v load_v and_o so_o let_v like_v unto_o a_o great_a belly_a woman_n that_o thou_o can_v not_o fly_v the_o plague_n yet_o if_o thou_o lust_v after_o such_o thing_n as_o i_o have_v speak_v of_o stand_v fast_o whatsoever_o shall_v befall_v thou_o in_o thy_o master_n cause_n and_o take_v this_o thy_o let_v to_o fly_v for_o a_o call_v from_o god_n to_o fight_v in_o thy_o master_n christ_n cause_n of_o this_o be_v thou_o certain_a they_o can_v do_v nothing_o unto_o thou_o which_o thy_o father_n be_v not_o aware_a of_o or_o have_v not_o foresee_v before_o they_o can_v do_v no_o more_o than_o it_o shall_v please_v he_o to_o suffer_v they_o to_o do_v for_o the_o furtherance_n of_o his_o glory_n edify_v of_o his_o church_n and_o thy_o own_o salvation_n o_o be_v not_o afraid_a and_o remember_v the_o end_n what_o i_o have_v speak_v for_o the_o comfort_n of_o the_o big-bellied_a woman_n i_o mean_v to_o be_v speak_v likewise_o to_o the_o captive_n and_o prisoner_n in_o god_n cause_n for_o such_o i_o count_v to_o be_v as_o it_o be_v already_o summon_v and_o press_v to_o fight_v under_o the_o banner_n of_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n and_o as_o it_o be_v soldier_n allow_v and_o take_v up_o for_o the_o lord_n war_n to_o do_v their_o lord_n and_o master_n good_a and_o honourable_a service_n and_o to_o stick_v to_o he_o even_o unto_o death_n etc._n etc._n to_o conclude_v i_o say_v unto_o all_o that_o love_n christ_n jesus_n our_o redeemer_n and_o saviour_n that_o love_n to_o follow_v the_o way_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o be_v our_o comforter_n and_o sanctifier_n that_o love_n christ_n spouse_n and_o body_n etc._n etc._n yea_o that_o love_n life_n and_o their_o soul_n health_n harken_v my_o dear_a brethren_n and_o sister_n 524._o etc._n etc._n to_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n 10._o speak_v to_o his_o apostle_n and_o mean_v to_o all_o his_o in_o st._n matthew_n gospel_n fear_v not_o they_o which_o kill_v the_o body_n for_o they_o can_v kill_v the_o soul_n but_o fear_v he_o etc._n etc._n the_o lord_n grant_v we_o of_o his_o heavenly_a grace_n and_o strength_n that_o here_o we_o may_v so_o confess_v he_o in_o this_o world_n among_o this_o adulterous_a generation_n that_o he_o may_v confess_v we_o again_o at_o the_o last_o day_n before_o his_o father_n etc._n etc._n in_o his_o reason_n why_o image_n shall_v not_o be_v place_v and_o erect_v in_o church_n 992._o first_o the_o word_n of_o the_o command_n exod._n 20._o repeat_v more_o plain_o deut._n 27._o where_o observe_v those_o word_n thou_o shall_v not_o make_v to_o thyself_o mean_v to_o any_o use_n of_o religion_n and_o those_o and_o set_v it_o in_o a_o secret_a place_n imply_v that_o no_o man_n dare_v then_o commit_v idolatry_n open_o the_o reason_n why_o god_n give_v this_o general_a prohibition_n be_v 993._o lest_o thou_o be_v deceive_v shall_v bow_v down_o to_o they_o and_o worship_v they_o this_o general_a law_n be_v general_o to_o be_v observe_v though_o some_o be_v not_o hurt_v by_o they_o moses_n be_v not_o deceive_v or_o seduce_v by_o iethro_n daughter_n nor_o boaz_n by_o ruth_n a_o woman_n of_o moab_n yet_o the_o general_a law_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v thou_o shall_v not_o join_v thy_o child_n in_o marriage_n with_o stranger_n 7._o lest_o she_o seduce_v thy_o son_n etc._n etc._n if_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o second_o commandment_n image_n be_v not_o lawful_a in_o the_o temple_n of_o the_o jew_n then_o by_o the_o second_o command_n they_o be_v unlawful_a in_o the_o church_n of_o christian_n but_o etc._n etc._n in_o the_o tabernacle_n and_o temple_n of_o god_n no_o image_n be_v appoint_v open_o to_o beset_v nor_o by_o practice_n afterward_o use_v or_o permit_v so_o long_o as_o religion_n be_v pure_o observe_v therefore_o etc._n etc._n for_o the_o second_o command_n be_v moral_a and_o not_o ceremonial_a etc._n etc._n the_o jew_n by_o no_o mean_n will_v consent_v to_o herod_n pilate_n or_o pe●ronius_n that_o image_n shall_v be_v place_v in_o the_o temple_n at_o jerusalem_n but_o rather_o offer_v themselves_o unto_o death_n then_o to_o consent_v unto_o it_o beside_o that_o josephus_n commend_v they_o for_o observe_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o law_n sure_o they_o will_v not_o have_v endanger_v themselves_o so_o far_o if_o they_o have_v think_v image_n have_v be_v indifferent_a in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n ath●nasius_n tell_v we_o the_o invention_n of_o image_n come_v of_o no_o good_a but_o of_o evil_a and_o whatsoever_o have_v a_o evil_a beginning_n can_v never_o in_o any_o thing_n be_v judge_v good_a see_v it_o be_v whole_o naught_o t●rtullian_n expound_v those_o word_n little_a child_n beware_v of_o image_n say_v that_o the_o meaning_n be_v as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v little_a child_n keep_v yourselves_o from_o the_o shape_n itself_o or_o form_n of_o they_o image_n in_o the_o church_n either_o serve_v to_o edify_v or_o to_o destroy_v if_o they_o edify_v than_o there_o be_v one_o kind_a of_o edification_n which_o the_o scripture_n neither_o teach_v nor_o command_v 14._o but_o always_o disallow_v if_o they_o destroy_v they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v in_o the_o church_n the_o command_n of_o god_n be_v thou_o shall_v not_o lay_v a_o stumbling-block_n before_o the_o blind_a and_o curse_a be_v he_o that_o make_v the_o blind_a wander_v in_o his_o way_n image_n be_v snare_n and_o trap_n for_o the_o foot_n of_o the_o ignorant_a 994._o image_n do_v not_o stir_v up_o the_o mind_n to_o devotion_n but_o distract_v the_o mind_n from_o prayer_n hear_v of_o god_n word_n etc._n etc._n hence_o in_o the_o council-chamber_n of_o the_o lacedaemonian_n no_o picture_n be_v suffer_v least_o in_o consultation_n of_o the_o weighty_a matter_n of_o the_o
glory_n my_o care_n in_o my_o great_a temptation_n be_v to_o have_v the_o sense_n of_o my_o soul_n open_a to_o perceive_v the_o voice_n of_o god_n say_v whosoever_o deny_v i_o before_o man_n he_o will_v i_o deny_v before_o my_o father_n and_o his_o angel_n and_o to_o save_v the_o life_n corporal_a be_v to_o lose_v the_o life_n eternal_a and_o he_o that_o will_v not_o suffer_v with_o christ_n shall_v not_o reign_v with_o he_o therefore_o most_o tender_a one_o i_o have_v by_o god_n spirit_n give_v over_o the_o flesh_n with_o the_o fight_n of_o my_o soul_n and_o the_o spirit_n have_v the_o victory_n the_o flesh_n shall_v now_o ere_o it_o be_v long_o leave_v off_o to_o sin_n the_o spirit_n shall_v reign_v eternal_o i_o have_v choose_v death_n to_o confirm_v the_o truth_n by_o i_o teach_v what_o can_v i_o do_v more_o 863._o consider_v with_o yourselves_o that_o i_o have_v do_v it_o for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o god_n truth_n pray_o that_o i_o may_v continue_v to_o the_o end_n the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o assault_n be_v past_a i_o praise_v my_o god_n i_o have_v in_o all_o my_o assault_n feel_v the_o present_a aid_n of_o my_o god_n i_o give_v he_o most_o hearty_a thanks_o therefore_o look_v not_o back_o nor_o be_v you_o ashamed_a of_o christ_n gospel_n nor_o of_o the_o bond_n i_o have_v suffer_v for_o the_o same_o it_o be_v no_o time_n for_o the_o loss_n of_o one_o man_n in_o the_o battle_n for_o the_o camp_n to_o turn_v back_o up_o with_o man_n heart_n blow_v down_o the_o daub_v wall_n of_o heresy_n let_v one_o take_v the_o banner_n and_o the_o other_o the_o trumdet_n i_o mean_v not_o to_o make_v corporal_a resistance_n but_o pray_v and_o you_o shall_v have_v elias_n defence_n and_o elizeus_fw-la company_n to_o fight_v for_o you_o the_o cause_n be_v the_o lord_n my_o heart_n with_o pang_n of_o death_n be_v assault_v but_o i_o be_o at_o home_o yet_o with_o my_o god_n alive_a pray_v for_o i_o etc._n etc._n from_o newgate_n prison_n in_o haste_n the_o day_n of_o my_o condemnation_n i._o r._n in_o his_o letter_n to_o the_o congregation_n two_o day_n before_o he_o suffer_v whosoever_o will_v live_v godly_a in_o christ_n jesus_n must_v suffer_v persecution_n for_o it_o be_v give_v unto_o they_o not_o only_o to_o believe_v but_o to_o suffer_v and_o the_o servant_n or_o scholar_n can_v be_v great_a than_o his_o lord_n or_o master_n but_o by_o the_o same_o way_n the_o head_n be_v enter_v the_o member_n must_v follow_v my_o dear_a soul_n be_v depart_v this_o life_n to_o my_o great_a advantage_n i_o make_v change_n of_o morality_n for_o immortality_n of_o corruption_n to_o put_v on_o incorruption_n to_o make_v my_o body_n like_a to_o the_o corn_n cast_v into_o the_o ground_n which_o except_o it_o die_v first_o it_o can_v bring_v forth_o no_o good_a fruit_n happy_a be_v they_o that_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n which_o be_v to_o die_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n profess_v and_o confess_v the_o same_o before_o many_o witness_n what_o a_o journey_n by_o god_n power_n i_o have_v make_v these_o eight_o day_n be_v above_o flesh_n and_o blood_n to_o bear_v but_o as_o paul_n say_v i_o may_v do_v all_o thing_n through_o he_o who_o work_v in_o i_o jesus_n christ._n my_o course_n brethren_n i_o have_v run_v i_o have_v fight_v a_o good_a fight_n the_o crown_n of_o righteousness_n be_v lay_v up_o for_o i_o my_o day_n to_o receive_v it_o be_v not_o long_o to_o pray_v brethren_n for_o the_o enemy_n do_v yet_o assault_n be_v not_o ashamed_a of_o the_o gospel_n of_o the_o cross_n by_o i_o preach_v nor_o of_o my_o suffering_n for_o with_o my_o blood_n i_o affirm_v the_o same_o i_o go_v before_o i_o suffer_v first_o the_o bait_n of_o the_o butcher_n dog_n yet_o i_o have_v not_o do_v what_o i_o shall_v have_v do_v what_o be_v undo_v impute_v that_o to_o frailty_n and_o ignorance_n and_o with_o your_o love_n cover_v that_o which_o be_v and_o be_v naked_a in_o i_o god_n know_v you_o be_v all_o tender_a to_o i_o my_o heart_n burst_v for_o the_o love_n of_o you_o you_o be_v not_o without_o the_o great_a pastor_n of_o your_o soul_n who_o so_o love_v you_o that_o if_o man_n be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v as_o god_n be_v praise_v there_o be_v no_o want_n of_o they_o he_o will_v cause_v stone_n to_o minister_v unto_o you_o cast_v your_o care_n on_o that_o rock_n the_o wind_n of_o temptation_n shall_v not_o prevail_v past_o and_o pray_v for_o the_o day_n be_v evil_a look_v up_o with_o your_o eye_n of_o hope_n for_o your_o redemption_n be_v not_o far_o off_o but_o my_o wickedness_n have_v deserve_v that_o i_o shall_v not_o see_v it_o and_o also_o that_o which_o be_v behind_o of_o the_o blood_n of_o our_o brethren_n which_o shall_v also_o be_v lay_v under_o the_o altar_n 864._o shall_v cry_v for_o your_o relief_n the_o friday_n at_o night_n before_o mr._n rough_n be_v take_v be_v in_o his_o bed_n he_o dream_v that_o he_o see_v two_o of_o the_o guard_n lead_v cuthbert_n sympson_n deacon_n of_o the_o say_a congregation_n and_o that_o he_o have_v the_o book_n about_o he_o wherein_o be_v write_v the_o name_n of_o all_o they_o that_o be_v of_o the_o congregation_n afterward_o he_o awake_v and_o have_v tell_v the_o dream_n unto_o his_o wife_n after_o some_o time_n spend_v in_o read_v he_o fall_v asleep_o again_o and_o dream_v the_o same_o dream_n again_o and_o awake_v tell_v his_o wife_n his_o dream_n and_o say_v o_o brother_n cuthbert_n be_v go_v and_o whilst_o he_o be_v make_v ready_a for_o to_o go_v and_o see_v how_o it_o be_v with_o he_o mr._n sympson_n come_v into_o mr._n rough_n house_n and_o bring_v the_o book_n with_o he_o mr._n rough_a have_v tell_v he_o his_o dream_n persuade_v he_o to_o carry_v the_o book_n no_o more_o about_o with_o he_o which_o he_o be_v loath_a to_o promise_v because_o say_v he_o dream_n be_v but_o fancy_n and_o not_o to_o be_v credit_v then_o mr._n rough_a strait_o charge_v he_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o do_v it_o whereupon_o mr._n sympson_n leave_v the_o book_n with_o mrs._n rough._n and_o so_o the_o congregation_n be_v preserve_v 865._o the_o next_o night_n mr._n rough_n dream_v that_o he_o himself_o be_v forcible_o carry_v to_o the_o bishop_n and_o that_o the_o bishop_n pluck_v off_o his_o beard_n and_o cast_v it_o into_o the_o fire_n say_v these_o word_n now_o i_o may_v say_v i_o have_v have_v a_o piece_n of_o a_o heretic_n burn_v in_o my_o house_n and_o so_o according_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v rose_n 933._o mr._n thomas_n rise_v bear_v at_o exmouth_n in_o devon_n when_o he_o be_v first_o take_v be_v sore_o stock_v in_o prison_n the_o stock_n be_v very_o high_a and_o great_a so_o that_o day_n and_o night_n he_o do_v lie_v with_o his_o back_n on_o the_o ground_n upon_o a_o little_a straw_n with_o his_o heel_n so_o high_a that_o by_o mean_n the_o blood_n be_v fall_v from_o his_o foot_n his_o foot_n be_v without_o sense_n for_o a_o long_a time_n his_o mother_n may_v not_o be_v suffer_v to_o see_v he_o afterward_o cranmer_n set_v he_o at_o liberty_n when_o he_o be_v bring_v before_o gardiner_n 934._o be_v take_v at_o bow_n in_o london_n with_o five_o and_o thirty_o more_o winchester_z tell_v he_o that_o he_o will_v know_v who_o be_v his_o maintainer_n or_o else_o he_o will_v make_v he_o a_o foot_n long_o my_o lord_n say_v he_o you_o shall_v do_v as_o much_o as_o please_v god_n and_o no_o more_o yet_o the_o law_n be_v in_o your_o hand_n but_o i_o have_v god_n for_o my_o maintainer_n and_o none_o other_o at_o his_o second_o examination_n the_o chancellor_n ask_v he_o 935._o what_o he_o say_v to_o the_o real_a presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n i_o wist_v right_o well_o say_v he_o you_o be_v make_v a_o instrument_n to_o seek_v innocent_a blood_n well_o you_o may_v have_v it_o if_o god_n permit_v it_o be_v present_a and_o at_o hand_n for_o i_o come_v not_o hither_o to_o lie_v but_o to_o die_v if_o god_n see_v it_o good_a in_o defence_n of_o that_o which_o i_o have_v say_v wherefore_o you_o may_v begin_v when_o you_o think_v good_a etc._n etc._n at_o his_o three_o examination_n the_o bishop_n say_v ah_o sirrah_n you_o will_v admit_v nothing_o but_o scripture_n i_o see_v well_o no_o true_o my_o lord_n say_v he_o i_o admit_v nothing_o but_o scripture_n for_o the_o regiment_n of_o the_o soul_n for_o faith_n come_v by_o hear_v and_o hear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o where_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v not_o there_o ought_v no_o belief_n to_o be_v give_v for_o whatsoever_o be_v not_o of_o faith_n be_v sin_n roth._n richard_n roth_n in_o his_o letter_n to_o certain_a brethren_n and_o sister_n condemn_v at_o colchester_n 848._o
if_o she_o will_v condemn_v i_o to_o perpetual_a imprisonment_n i_o will_v thank_v she_o the_o chancellor_n press_v he_o to_o do_v as_o they_o have_v do_v 283._o in_o hope_n of_o the_o queen_n mercy_n and_o pardon_n my_o lord_n say_v he_o i_o desire_v mercy_n with_o god_n mercy_n i._n e._n without_o do_v or_o say_v any_o thing_n against_o god_n and_o his_o truth_n pag._n 290._o but_o mercy_n with_o god_n wrath_n god_n keep_v i_o from_o god_n mercy_n i_o desire_v and_o also_o will_v be_v glad_a of_o the_o queen_n favour_n to_o live_v as_o a_o subject_a without_o clog_n on_o conscience_n but_o otherwise_o the_o lord_n mercy_n be_v better_a to_o i_o then_o life_n life_n in_o his_o displeasure_n be_v worse_a than_o death_n and_o death_n with_o his_o favour_n be_v true_a life_n 286._o he_o have_v refuse_v again_o and_o again_o to_o answer_v to_o the_o chancellor_n query_n say_v that_o no_o fear_n but_o the_o fear_n of_o perjury_n make_v he_o unwilling_a to_o answer_v he_o have_v be_v six_o time_n swear_v not_o to_o consent_v to_o the_o practise_v of_o any_o jurisdiction_n or_o any_o authority_n on_o the_o bishop_n of_o r●me's_n behalf_n within_o the_o realm_n of_o england_n i_o be_o not_o afraid_a of_o death_n i_o thank_v god_n i_o look_v and_o have_v look_v for_o nothing_o else_o from_o your_o hand_n a_o long_a time_n but_o i_o be_o afraid_a when_o death_n come_v i_o shall_v have_v ma●ter_n to_o trouble_v my_o conscience_n by_o the_o guilt_n of_o perjury_n as_o for_o my_o death_n as_o i_o know_v there_o be_v twelve_o hour_n in_o the_o day_n so_o with_o the_o lord_n my_o time_n be_v appoint_v and_o when_o it_o shall_v be_v his_o good_a time_n than_o i_o shall_v depart_v hence_o but_o in_o the_o mean_a season_n i_o be_o safe_a enough_o though_o all_o the_o reople_n have_v swear_v my_o death_n into_o his_o hand_n have_v i_o commit_v it_o and_o do_v his_o good_a will_v be_v do_v 297._o the_o earl_n of_o derby_n send_v one_o of_o his_o servant_n to_o he_o will_v he_o to_o tender_v himself_o he_o tell_v the_o messenger_n that_o he_o thank_v his_o lordship_n for_o his_o good_a will_n towards_o he_o but_o in_o this_o case_n i_o can_v tender_v myself_o more_o than_o god_n honour_n the_o same_o servant_n say_v also_o ah_o mr._n bradford_n consider_v your_o mother_n sister_n friend_n kinsfolk_n country_n what_o a_o great_a discomfort_n it_o will_v be_v to_o they_o to_o see_v you_o die_v as_o a_o heretic_n mr._n bradford_n reply_v i_o have_v learned_a to_o forsake_v father_n mother_n brother_n sister_n friend_n and_o all_o that_o ever_o i_o have_v yea_o and_o my_o own_o self_n for_o else_o i_o can_v be_v christ_n disciple_n be_v ask_v by_o a_o good_a gentlewoman_n servant_n 305._o that_o be_v send_v to_o he_o how_o he_o do_v he_o answer_v well_o i_o thank_v god_n for_o as_o man_n in_o sail_v which_o be_v near_o to_o the_o shore_n or_o haven_n where_o they_o will_v be_v will_v be_v near_o even_o so_o the_o near_o i_o be_o to_o god_n the_o near_o i_o will_v be_v in_o a_o letter_n to_o his_o mother_n and_o brethren_n 308._o i_o be_o at_o this_o time_n in_o prison_n sure_a enough_o from_o start_v to_o confirm_v that_o i_o have_v preach_v unto_o you_o as_o i_o be_o ready_a i_o thank_v god_n with_o my_o life_n and_o blood_n to_o seal_v the_o same_o if_o god_n vouchsafe_v i_o worthy_a of_o that_o honour_n if_o we_o suffer_v with_o he_o we_o shall_v also_o reign_v w●th_v he_o be_v not_o therefore_o fainthearted_a but_o rather_o rejoice_v at_o the_o least_o for_o my_o sake_n who_o now_o be_o in_o the_o right_n and_o high_a way_n to_o heaven_n for_o by_o many_o affliction_n we_o must_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n now_o will_v god_n make_v know_v his_o child_n when_o the_o wind_n do_v not_o blow_n the_o wheat_n can_v be_v know_v from_o the_o chaff_n but_o when_o the_o blast_n come_v then_o fly_v away_o the_o chaff_n but_o the_o wheat_n remain_v and_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v hurt_v that_o by_o the_o wind_n it_o be_v more_o cleanse_v from_o the_o chaff_n gold_n when_o it_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o fire_n be_v the_o more_o precious_a so_o be_v god_n child_n by_o affliction_n indeed_o i_o thank_v god_n more_o for_o this_o prison_n then_o for_o any_o parlour_n yea_o then_o for_o any_o pleasure_n that_o eyer_n i_o have_v for_o in_o it_o i_o find_v god_n my_o most_o sweet_a good_a god_n always_o of_o all_o death_n it_o be_v most_o to_o be_v desire_v to_o die_v for_o god_n sake_n such_o be_v sure_a to_o go_v to_o heaven_n death_n nor_o life_n nor_o prison_n nor_o pleasure_n i_o trust_v in_o god_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o separate_v i_o from_o my_o lord_n god_n and_o his_o gospel_n rejoice_v in_o my_o suffering_n for_o it_o be_v for_o your_o sake_n to_o confirm_v the_o truth_n i_o have_v teach_v howsoever_o you_o do_v be_v obedient_a to_o the_o high_a power_n that_o be_v in_o no_o point_n either_o in_o hand_n or_o tongue_n rebel_n but_o rather_o if_o they_o command_v that_o which_o with_o good_a conscience_n you_o can_v obey_v lay_v your_o head_n on_o the_o block_n and_o suffer_v what_o they_o shall_v do_v or_o say_v by_o patience_n possess_v your_o soul_n 310._o in_o his_o letter_n to_o the_o city_n of_o london_n i_o ask_v god_n hearty_o mercy_n that_o i_o do_v no_o more_o rejoice_v than_o i_o do_v have_v so_o great_a cause_n as_o to_o be_v a_o instrument_n wherein_o it_o may_v please_v my_o dear_a lord_n and_o saviour_n to_o suffer_v although_o my_o sin_n be_v manifold_a and_o grievous_a yet_o the_o bishop_n and_o prelate_n do_v not_o persecute_v they_o in_o i_o but_o christ_n himself_o his_o word_n his_o truth_n and_o religion_n let_v the_o anger_n and_o plague_n of_o god_n most_o just_o fall_v upon_o we_o be_v apply_v to_o every_o one_o of_o our_o desert_n that_o from_o the_o bottom_n of_o our_o heart_n every_o one_o of_o we_o may_v say_v it_o be_v i_o lord_n that_o have_v sin_v against_o thou_o it_o be_v my_o hypocrisy_n my_o vainglory_n my_o covetousness_n uncleanness_n carnality_n security_n idleness_n unthankfulness_n self-love_n etc._n etc._n which_o have_v deserve_v the_o take_v away_o of_o thy_o word_n and_o true_a religion_n of_o thy_o good_a minister_n by_o exile_n imprisonment_n death_n etc._n etc._n prepare_v yourselves_o to_o the_o cross_n be_v obedient_a to_o all_o that_o be_v in_o authority_n in_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o against_o god_n his_o word_n for_o then_o answer_v with_o the_o apostle_n it_o be_v more_o meet_a to_o obey_v god_n then_o man_n howbeit_o never_a for_o any_o thing_n resist_v or_o rise_v against_o the_o magistrate_n avenge_v not_o yourselves_o commit_v your_o cause_n to_o the_o lord_n if_o you_o feel_v in_o yourselves_o a_o hope_n and_o trust_v in_o god_n that_o he_o will_v never_o tempt_v you_o above_o that_o he_o will_v make_v you_o able_a to_o bear_v be_v assure_v the_o lord_n will_v be_v true_a to_o you_o and_o you_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o bear_v all_o brunt_n but_o if_o you_o want_v this_o hope_n flee_v and_o get_v you_o hence_o rather_o than_o by_o your_o tarry_v god_n name_v shall_v be_v dishonour_v in_o his_o letter_n to_o cambridge_n 312._o thou_o my_o mother_n the_o university_n have_v not_o only_o have_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n word_n plain_o manifest_v unto_o thou_o by_o read_v dispute_v and_o preach_v public_o and_o private_o but_o now_o to_o make_v thou_o altogether_o excuseless_a and_o as_o it_o be_v almost_o to_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n if_o thou_o put_v to_o thy_o help_a hand_n with_o the_o romish_a rout_n to_o suppress_v the_o verity_n and_o set_v out_o the_o contrary_a thou_o have_v my_o life_n and_o blood_n as_o a_o seal_n to_o confirm_v thou_o if_o thou_o will_v be_v confirm_v or_o else_o to_o confound_v thou_o if_o thou_o will_v take_v part_n with_o the_o prelate_n and_o clergy_n which_o now_o fill_v up_o the_o measure_n of_o their_o father_n which_o slay_v the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n that_o all_o the_o righteous_a blood_n from_o abel_n to_o bradford_n may_v be_v require_v at_o their_o hand_n for_o the_o tender_a mercy_n of_o christ_n in_o his_o bowel_n and_o blood_n i_o beseech_v you_o to_o take_v christ_n eyesalve_n to_o anoint_v your_o eye_n that_o you_o may_v see_v what_o you_o do_v and_o have_v do_v in_o admit_v the_o romish_a rot_a rag_n which_o once_o you_o utter_o expel_v o_o be_v not_o the_o dog_n return_v to_o his_o vomit_n be_v not_o the_o sow_n that_o be_v wash_v return_v to_o her_o wallow_n in_o the_o mire_n beware_v lest_o satan_n enter_v in_o with_o seven_o worse_a spirit_n etc._n etc._n it_o have_v be_v better_a you_o have_v never_o know_v the_o truth_n then_o after_o knowledge_n to_o have_v run_v
pure_a law_n of_o god_n which_o prove_v the_o best_a of_o we_o all_o damnable_a sinner_n in_o the_o light_n of_o god_n and_o that_o our_o best_a work_n be_v pollute_v in_o such_o sort_n as_o the_o prophet_n describe_v they_o with_o the_o which_o manner_n of_o speak_v our_o freewill_n pharisees_n be_v much_o offend_v for_o it_o fall_v all_o man_n righteousness_n to_o the_o ground_n in_o his_o letter_n to_o mr._n augustine_n bernher_n pray_v for_o i_o that_o i_o may_v be_v strong_a and_o hardy_a to_o lay_v a_o good_a load_n on_o that_o bloody_a beast_n of_o babylon_n o_o that_o i_o may_v so_o strike_v he_o down_o that_o he_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o rise_v again_o but_o that_o stroke_n belong_v only_o to_o the_o lord_n to_o strike_v at_o his_o come_n which_o i_o hope_v will_v be_v short_o carpenter_n all_o bavaria_n say_v george_n carpenter_n be_v not_o so_o dear_a to_o i_o as_o my_o wife_n and_o child_n 156._o yet_o for_o christ_n sake_n i_o will_v forsake_v they_o cheerful_o carver_n mr._n derick_n carver_n 385._o be_v ask_v by_o bonner_n whether_o he_o will_v stand_v for_o his_o confession_n answer_v he_o will_v for_o your_o doctrine_n be_v poison_n and_o sorcery_n if_o christ_n be_v here_o you_o will_v put_v he_o to_o a_o worse_a death_n than_o he_o be_v put_v to_o before_o at_o the_o stake_n he_o speak_v thus_o dear_a brethren_n and_o sister_n i_o be_o come_v here_o to_o seal_v with_o my_o blood_n christ_n gospel_n because_o that_o i_o know_v it_o to_o be_v true_a as_o many_o of_o you_o as_o do_v believe_v upon_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n unto_o everlasting_a life_n see_v you_o do_v the_o work_n pertain_v to_o the_o same_o as_o many_o of_o you_o as_o do_v believe_v on_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n you_o do_v believe_v to_o your_o utter_a condemnation_n and_o except_v the_o great_a mercy_n of_o god_n prevent_v not_o you_o shall_v burn_v in_o hell_n perpetual_o in_o his_o prayer_n o_o lord_n my_o god_n thou_o has●_n write_v he_o that_o will_v not_o forsake_v wife_n child_n house_n and_o all_o that_o ever_o he_o have_v and_o take_v up_o his_o cross_n and_o follow_v thou_o be_v not_o worthy_a of_o thou_o lord_n thou_o know_v that_o i_o have_v forsake_v all_o to_o come_v unto_o thou_o lord_n have_v mercy_n upon_o i_o for_o unto_o thou_o i_o commend_v my_o spirit_n and_o my_o soul_n do_v rejoice_v in_o thou_o chrysostome_n 145._o eudina_n xia_fw-la the_o empress_n have_v send_v he_o a_o very_a threaten_a message_n he_o give_v this_o answer_n go_v tell_v she_o nil_fw-la nisi_fw-la peccatum_fw-la timeo_fw-la i_o fear_v nothing_o but_o sin_n when_o she_o have_v procure_v his_o banishment_n as_o he_o go_v forth_o of_o the_o city_n he_o say_v none_o of_o these_o thing_n trouble_v i_o but_o i_o say_v within_o myself_o if_o the_o queen_n will_v let_v she_o banish_v i_o the_o earth_n be_v the_o lord_n and_o the_o fullness_n thereof_o if_o she_o will_v let_v she_o cast_v i_o into_o the_o sea_n i_o will_v remember_v jonah_n if_o she_o will_v let_v she_o cast_v i_o into_o a_o burn_a fiery_a furnace_n or_o among_o wild_a beast_n the_o three_o child_n and_o daniel_n be_v so_o deal_v with_o if_o she_o will_v let_v her_o stone_n i_o or_o cut_v off_o my_o head_n i_o have_v st._n stephen_n and_o the_o baptist_n my_o bless_a companion_n if_o she_o will_v let_v she_o take_v away_o all_o my_o substance_n naked_a come_v i_o out_o of_o my_o mother_n womb_n and_o naked_a shall_v i_o return_v thither_o again_o he_o use_v to_o say_v the_o devil_n be_v first_o assault_n be_v violent_a resist_v that_o and_o his_o second_o will_v be_v weak_a and_o that_o be_v resist_v he_o prove_v a_o coward_n clarebachius_n 159._o i_o believe_v say_v adolphus_n clarebachius_n that_o there_o be_v not_o a_o merry_a heart_n in_o the_o world_n at_o this_o instant_n than_o i_o be_v behold_v you_o shall_v see_v i_o die_v by_o that_o faith_n i_o have_v live_v in_o colham_n see_v sir_n john_n oldcastle_n under_o the_o letter_n o_o clark_n when_o roger_n clark_n be_v sentence_v 569._o he_o say_v with_o much_o vehemency_n fight_v for_o your_o god_n for_o he_o have_v not_o long_o to_o continue_v at_o the_o stake_n he_o cry_v out_o to_o the_o people_n behold_v the_o lamb_n of_o god_n which_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n coligni_n jasper_n coligni_n life_n great_a admiral_n of_o france_n who_o be_v slay_v in_o the_o massacre_n at_o paris_n august_n 24._o 1572._o be_v shoot_v in_o the_o left_a arm_n with_o two_o bullet_n and_o the_o forefinger_n of_o the_o right_a hand_n break_v off_o with_o a_o three_o and_o be_v tell_v by_o a_o gentleman_n that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v fear_v the_o bullet_n be_v poison_v he_o say_v all_o must_v be_v as_o it_o please_v god_n see_v his_o friend_n weep_v which_o hold_v his_o arm_n whilst_o the_o incision_n be_v make_v he_o say_v my_o friend_n why_o do_v you_o weep_v i_o judge_v myself_o happy_a that_o bear_v these_o wound_n for_o the_o cause_n of_o my_o god_n to_o mr._n merlin_n his_o chaplain_n he_o say_v these_o wound_n my_o friend_n be_v god_n blessing_n the_o smart_n indeed_o be_v troublesome_a but_o i_o acknowledge_v the_o will_n of_o my_o lord_n therein_o and_o i_o bless_v his_o majesty_n who_o have_v be_v please_v thus_o to_o honour_v i_o and_o to_o lay_v any_o pain_n upon_o i_o for_o his_o holy_a name_n sake_n let_v we_o beg_v of_o he_o that_o he_o will_v enable_v i_o to_o persevere_v to_o the_o end_n speak_v concern_v those_o that_o wound_v he_o i_o know_v assure_o say_v he_o that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o their_o power_n to_o hurt_v i_o no_o though_o they_o shall_v kill_v i_o for_o my_o death_n be_v a_o most_o certain_a passage_n to_o eternal_a life_n n_o when_o the_o bloodhound_n break_v open_v the_o house_n where_o he_o lay_v wound_v he_o speak_v thus_o i_o perceive_v what_o be_v a_o do_v i_o be_v never_o afraid_a of_o death_n and_o i_o be_o ready_a to_o undergo_v it_o patient_o for_o which_o ●_o have_v long_o since_o prepare_v myself_o i_o bless_v god_n that_o i_o shall_v die_v in_o the_o lord_n ●_o now_o need_v no_o long_o any_o help_n of_o man_n therefore_o my_o friend_n get_v you_o hence_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n to_o who_o goodness_n i_o commend_v my_o soul_n be_v abundant_o sufficient_o for_o i_o cover_n 163._o sheep_n we_o be_v for_o the_o slaughter_n say_v franc●_n co'ver_o to_o his_o two_o son_n massacre_v together_o with_o himself_o this_o be_v no_o new_a thing_n let_v we_o follow_v million_o of_o martyr_n through_o temporal_a death_n unto_o eternal_a life_n coo._n 419._o roger_n coo_o be_v ask_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o nor●ich●_n whether_o he_o will_v not_o obey_v the_o king_n law_n answer_v as_o far_o as_o they_o agree_v with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n i_o will_v obey_v they_o whether_o they_o agree_v with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o no_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o obey_v they_o say_v the_o bishop_n though_o the_o king_n be_v a_o infidel_n coo_o reply_v if_o shadrach_n m●shach_n and_o abedn●go_n have_v so_o do_v neluchadn●zzar_n have_v neve●_n confess_v the_o live_v god_n constantine_n 154._o be_v carry_v with_o other_o martyr_n in_o a_o dungy_a cart_n to_o the_o place_n of_o execution_n he_o speak_v thuss_v well_o yet_o be_v we_o a_o precious_a odour_n and_o a_o swee●_n savour_n to_o god_n in_o christ._n cornford_n 893._o john_n cornford_n one_o of_o the_o last_o five_o that_o suffer_v martyrdom_n in_o queen_n mary_n day_n when_o th●_n sentence_n shall_v have_v be_v pass_v and_o they_o shall_v have_v be_v execute_v by_o the_o papist_n be_v move●_n in_o spirit_n with_o a_o vehement_a zeal_n for_o god_n in_o the_o nam●_n of_o they_o all_o pronounce_v sentence_n of_o excommunication_n against_o the_o papist_n in_o these_o word_n in_o the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o most_o mighty_a god_n and_o by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o his_o holy_a and_o apostolic_a church_n we_o do_v hereby_o give_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o satan_n to_o be_v destroy_v the_o body_n of_o those_o blasphemer_n and_o heretic_n that_o do_v maintain_v any_o error_n against_o his_o most_o holy_a word_n or_o do_v condemn_v his_o most_o holy_a truth_n for_o heresy_n to_o the_o maintenance_n of_o any_o false_a church_n or_o feign_a religion_n so_o that_o by_o this_o thy_o just_a judgement_n against_o thy_o adversary_n thy_o true_a religion_n may_v be_v know_v to_o thy_o great_a glory_n and_o our_o comfort_n and_o to_o the_o edify_n of_o all_o our_o nation_n lord_n jesus_n so_o be_v it_o it_o be_v observable_a that_o within_o six_o day_n after_o this_o excommunication_n queen_n mary_n die_v and_o the_o tyranny_n of_o all_o
unto_o we_o but_o also_o personal_o to_o visit_v the_o poor_a oppress_v and_o see_v that_o nothing_o be_v lack_v unto_o they_o but_o that_o they_o have_v both_o ghostly_a comfort_n and_o bodily_a sustenance_n notwithstanding_o the_o strait_a inhibition_n and_o terrible_a menace_v of_o these_o worldly_a ruler_n even_o ready_a to_o abide_v the_o extreme_a jeopardy_n that_o tyrant_n can_v imagine_v this_o be_v a_o evidence_n that_o you_o have_v prepare_v yourselves_o to_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n according_a to_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o wise_a man_n which_o say_v my_o son_n when_o thou_o shall_v enter_v into_o the_o way_n of_o the_o lord_n prepare_v thyself_o unto_o tribulation_n this_o be_v a_o evidence_n that_o you_o have_v cast_v up_o your_o account_n and_o have_v wherewith_o to_o finish_v the_o tower_n which_o you_o have_v begin_v to_o build_v and_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o he_o that_o have_v begin_v this_o work_n in_o you_o shall_v for_o his_o glory_n accomplish_v the_o same_o even_o unto_o the_o come_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o shall_v give_v unto_o every_o man_n according_a to_o his_o deed_n and_o albeit_o god_n of_o his_o secret_a judgement_n for_o a_o time_n keep_v the_o rod_n from_o some_o of_o they_o that_o ensue_v his_o step_n yet_o let_v they_o sure_o reckon_v upon_o it_o for_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o all_o which_o will_v live_v devout_o in_o christ_n must_v suffer_v persecution_n for_o who_o the_o lord_n love_v he_o correct_v and_o chasten_v every_o child_n that_o he_o receive_v if_o you_o be_v not_o under_o correction_n of_o which_o we_o be_v all_o partaker_n then_o be_v you_o bastard_n and_o not_o child_n nevertheless_o we_o may_v not_o suppose_v that_o our_o most_o love_a father_n shall_v do_v that_o because_o he_o rejoice_v in_o our_o blood_n or_o punishment_n but_o he_o do_v it_o for_o our_o singular_a profit_n that_o we_o may_v be_v partaker_n of_o holiness_n and_o that_o the_o remnant_n of_o sin_n which_o through_o the_o frailty_n of_o our_o member_n rebel_v against_o the_o spirit_n and_o will_n cause_v our_o work_n to_o go_v unperfect_o forward_a and_o may_v some_o deal_v be_v suppress_v lest_o they_o shall_v subdue_v we_o and_o reign_v over_o we_o of_o these_o thing_n god_n have_v give_v i_o the_o speculation_n before_o and_o now_o it_o have_v please_v he_o to_o put_v in_o ure_n and_o practice_n upon_o i_o i_o ever_o think_v yea_o and_o do_v think_v that_o to_o walk_v after_o god_n word_n will_v cost_v i_o my_o life_n at_o one_o time_n or_o another_o and_o although_o the_o king_n grace_n shall_v take_v i_o into_o his_o favour_n and_o not_o suffer_v the_o bloody_a edomite_n to_o have_v their_o pleasure_n upon_o i_o yet_o will_v i_o not_o think_v that_o i_o be_o escape_v but_o that_o god_n have_v only_o defer_v it_o for_o a_o season_n to_o the_o intent_n that_o i_o shall_v work_v somewhat_o that_o he_o have_v appoint_v i_o to_o do_v and_o so_o to_o use_v i_o to_o his_o glory_n and_o i_o beseech_v all_o the_o faithful_a follower_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o arm_v themselves_o with_o the_o same_o supposition_n mark_v themselves_o with_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n not_o from_o the_o cross_n as_o the_o superstitious_a multitude_n do_v but_o rather_o to_o the_o cross_n in_o token_n that_o they_o be_v ever_o ready_a willing_o to_o receive_v the_o cross_n when_o it_o shall_v please_v god_n to_o lay_v it_o upon_o they_o the_o day_n that_o it_o come_v not_o count_v it_o clear_v win_v give_v thanks_o to_o the_o lord_n who_o have_v keep_v it_o from_o you_o and_o then_o when_o it_o come_v it_o shall_v nothing_o dismay_v you_o for_o it_o be_v no_o new_a thing_n but_o that_o which_o you_o have_v continual_o look_v for_o and_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o god_n who_o be_v faithful_a will_v not_o suffer_v you_o to_o be_v tempt_v above_o what_o you_o be_v able_a to_o bear_v but_o shall_v ever_o send_v some_o occasion_n by_o the_o which_o you_o shall_v stand_v steadfast_a for_o either_o he_o shall_v blind_v the_o eye_n of_o your_o enemy_n and_o diminish_v their_o tyrannous_a power_n or_o else_o when_o he_o have_v suffer_v they_o to_o do_v their_o best_a and_o that_o the_o dragon_n have_v cast_v a_o whole_a flood_n of_o water_n after_o you_o he_o shall_v cause_v even_o the_o earth_n to_o ope●_n her_o mouth_n &_o swallow_v they_o up_o so_o faithful_a be_v he_o an●_n careful_a to_o ease_v we_o when_o the_o vexation_n shall_v be_v too_o heavy_a for_o we_o he_o shall_v send_v a_o joseph_n before_o you_o against_o you_o shall_v come_v into_o egypt_n yea_o he_o shall_v so_o provide_v fo●_n you_o that_o you_o shall_v have_v a_o hundred_o father_n for_o one_o a_o hundred_o mother_n for_o one_o a_o hundred_o house_n for_o one_o and_o that_o in_o this_o life_n as_o i_o have_v prove_v b●_n experience_n and_o after_o this_o life_n everlasting_a joy_n wit●_n christ_n our_o saviour_n notwithstanding_o since_o thi●_n steadfastness_n come_v not_o of_o ourselves_o as_o st._n austi●_n say_v there_o be_v never_o man_n so_o weak_a or_o frail_a no_o no●_n the_o great_a offender_n that_o ever_o live_v but_o that_o every_o man_n of_o his_o own_o nature_n shall_v be_v as_o frail_a and_o commit_v as_o great_a enormity_n except_o he_o be_v keep_v from_o it_o by_o the_o spirit_n and_o power_n of_o god_n i_o beseech_v you_o brethren_n in_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n to_o pray_v with_o i_o that_o we_o may_v be_v vessel_n to_o his_o land_n and_o praise_n what_o time_n soever_o it_o please_v he_o to_o call_v upon_o 〈◊〉_d the_o father_n of_o glory_n give_v we_o the_o spirit_n of_o wisdom_n understanding_n and_o knowledge_n and_o lighten_v the_o eye_n of_o our_o mind_n that_o we_o may_v know_v his_o waye●_n praise_v the_o lord_n eternal_o amen_o john_n frith_n the_o prisoner_n of_o jesus_n christ_n at_o all_o time_n abide_v his_o pleasure_n 306._o in_o his_o letter_n to_o his_o friend_n concern_v his_o trouble_n i_o doubt_v not_o dear_a brethren_n but_o th●●_n it_o do_v some_o deal_n vex_v you_o to_o see_v the_o one_o part_v 〈◊〉_d have_v all_o the_o word_n and_o free_o to_o speak_v what_o they_o list_v and_o the_o other_o to_o be_v put_v to_o silence_n and_o not_o to_o be_v hear_v indifferent_o but_o refer_v your_o matter_n unto_o god_n who_o short_o shall_v judge_v after_o another_o fashion_n the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n have_v send_v one_o of_o his_o gentleman_n 991._o and_o one_o of_o his_o porter_n to_o fetch_v mr._n john_n frith_n out_o of_o the_o tower_n to_o be_v examine_v the_o gentleman_n pity_v he_o endeavour_v to_o persuade_v he_o to_o relent_v to_o authority_n and_o to_o give_v place_n for_o a_o time_n and_o not_o to_o cast_v himself_o away_o and_o suffer_v all_o his_o singular_a gift_n to_o perish_v with_o he_o with_o little_a profit_n to_o the_o world_n etc._n etc._n mr._n frith_n give_v he_o thanks_o for_o his_o good_a will_n but_o tell_v he_o far_o thus_o my_o cause_n and_o conscience_n be_v such_o that_o in_o no_o wise_a i_o either_o may_v or_o can_v for_o any_o worldly_a respect_n without_o danger_n of_o damnation_n start_v aside_o etc._n etc._n if_o i_o be_v demand_v what_o i_o think_v of_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n otherwise_o call_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n i_o must_v needs_o say_v my_o knowledge_n and_o my_o conscience_n though_o i_o shall_v present_o lose_v twenty_o life_n if_o i_o have_v so_o many_o and_o if_o i_o may_v be_v indifferent_o hear_v i_o be_o sure_a my_o adversary_n can_v condemn_v i_o or_o my_o assertion_n etc._n etc._n yea_o marry_o quoth_v the_o gentleman_n you_o say_v well_o if_o you_o may_v be_v indifferent_o hear_v but_o i_o much_o doubt_v thereof_o for_o that_o our_o master_n christ_n be_v not_o indifferent_o hear_v neither_o shall_v be_v as_o i_o think_v if_o he_o be_v now_o present_a again_o in_o the_o world_n etc._n etc._n well_o well_o quoth_v frith_n unto_o the_o gentleman_n i_o know_v very_o well_o that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o sacrament_n which_o i_o hold_v and_o have_v open_v contrary_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o this_o realm_n be_v vety_n hard_a meat_n to_o be_v digest_v both_o of_o the_o clergy_n and_o laity_n but_o this_o i_o will_v say_v to_o you_o that_o if_o you_o live_v but_o twenty_o year_n more_o you_o shall_v see_v this_o whole_a realm_n of_o my_o opinion_n etc._n etc._n and_o if_o it_o come_v not_o to_o pass_v then_o account_v i_o the_o vain_a man_n that_o ever_o you_o hear_v speak_v with_o a_o tongue_n all_o thing_n well_o and_o right_o ponder_v my_o death_n in_o this_o cause_n which_o be_v god_n and_o not_o i_o shall_v be_v better_o unto_o i_o and_o all_o i_o than_o life_n in_o continual_a bondage_n and_o misery_n the_o gentleman_n be_v 〈◊〉_d wrought_v upon_o that_o he_o contrive_v a_o way_n
and_o seven_o child_n bring_v to_o he_o the_o bishop_n hope_v to_o overcome_v he_o by_o his_o natural_a affection_n to_o they_o and_o his_o wife_n beginning_n to_o exhort_v he_o to_o favour_n himself_o he_o desire_v she_o not_o to_o be_v a_o block_n in_o his_o way_n for_o that_o he_o be_v in_o good_a course_n run_v towards_o the_o mark_n of_o his_o salvation_n gibson_n 858._o some_o of_o the_o article_n exhibit_v against_o mr._n richard_n gibson_n 3_o that_o he_o have_v commend_v allow_v defend_v and_o like_v both_o cranmer_n l●tim●r_n ridley_n and_o all_o other_o heretic_n here_o in_o this_o realm_n of_o england_n according_a to_o the_o ecclesiastical_a law_n condemn_v for_o heretic_n and_o also_o like_v their_o opinion_n 4_o that_o he_o have_v comfort_v aid_v assist_v and_o maintain_v both_o by_o word_n and_o otherwise_o heretic_n and_o erroneous_a person_n or_o at_o the_o least_o suspect_a and_o infamed_a of_o heresy_n etc._n etc._n 5_o that_o he_o have_v affirm_v that_o the_o religion_n now_o use_v in_o this_o realm_n be_v in_o no_o wise_a agreeable_a to_o god_n word_n and_o commandment_n etc._n etc._n the_o bishop_n ask_v he_o if_o he_o know_v any_o cause_n why_o the_o sentence_n shall_v not_o be_v read_v against_o he_o he_o say_v 859._o the_o bishop_n have_v nothing_o wherefore_o just_o to_o condemn_v he_o sentence_n be_v read_v he_o again_o admonish_v gibson_n to_o remember_v himself_o and_o so_o save_v his_o soul._n mr._n gibson_n answer_v that_o he_o will_v not_o hear_v the_o bishop_n babble_v bold_o protest_v that_o he_o be_v contrary_a to_o they_o all_o in_o his_o mind_n though_o he_o aforet_n i_o keep_v it_o secret_n for_o fear_v of_o the_o law_n and_o speak_v to_o the_o bishop_n he_o say_v bless_a be_o i_o that_o be_o curse_v at_o your_o hand_n we_o have_v nothing_o now_o but_o thus_o will_v i_o for_o as_o the_o bishop_n say_v so_o it_o must_v be_v and_o no_o heresy_n be_v it_o to_o turn_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n word_n into_o lie_n and_o that_o do_v you_o mr._n gibson_n also_o propound_v nine_o article_n to_o bonner_n by_o he_o to_o be_v answer_v by_o yea_o or_o nay_o or_o else_o by_o say_v he_o can_v not_o tell_v 1_o whether_o the_o scripture_n of_o god_n write_v by_o moses_n and_o other_o holy_a prophet_n of_o god_n through_o faith_n that_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n be_v available_a doctrine_n to_o make_v all_o man_n in_o all_o thing_n unto_o salvation_n learned_a without_o the_o help_n of_o any_o other_o doctrine_n or_o no_o 3_o whether_o the_o holy_a word_n of_o god_n as_o it_o be_v write_v do_v sufficient_o teach_v all_o man_n of_o what_o dignity_n estate_n or_o call_v by_o office_n whatsoever_o be_v or_o they_o be_v their_o full_a true_a and_o lawful_a duty_n in_o their_o office_n and_o whether_o every_o man_n be_v find_v upon_o the_o pain_n of_o eternal_a damnation_n in_o all_o thing_n to_o do_v as_o he_o be_v thereby_o teach_v and_o command_v and_o in_o no_o wise_a to_o leave_v undo_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v to_o be_v do_v be_v teach_v and_o command_v by_o the_o same_o 4_o whether_o any_o man_n the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n god_n and_o man_n only_o except_v by_o the_o holy_a ordinance_n of_o god_n ever_o be_v be_v or_o shall_v be_v lord_n over_o faith_n 5_o by_o what_o lawful_a authority_n or_o power_n any_o man_n of_o what_o dignity_n estate_n or_o call_v soever_o he_o or_o they_o be_v may_v be_v so_o bold_a as_o to_o alter_v or_o change_v the_o holy_a ordinance_n of_o god_n or_o any_o of_o they_o or_o any_o part_n of_o they_o 6_o by_o what_o evident_a token_n antichrist_n in_o his_o minister_n may_v be_v know_v see_v it_o be_v write_v that_o satan_n can_v change_v himself_o into_o the_o similitude_n of_o a_o angel_n of_o light_n and_o his_o minister_n fashion_v themselves_o as_o though_o they_o be_v minister_n of_o righteousness_n 7_o what_o the_o beast_n be_v which_o make_v war_n with_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n and_o what_o the_o gorgeous_a and_o glitter_a whore_n be_v which_o sit_v upon_o the_o beast_n gilby_n 59_o mr._n anthony_n gilby_n a_o exile_a minister_n of_o christ_n in_o queen_n mary_n day_n in_o his_o admonition_n speak_v thus_o whereas_o many_o have_v write_v many_o profitable_a admonition_n to_o you_o twain_o o_o england_n and_o scotland_n both_o make_v one_o island_n most_o happy_a if_o you_o can_v know_v your_o own_o happiness_n and_o other_o with_o pen_n and_o tongue_n with_o word_n with_o write_v with_o jeopardy_n and_o loss_n of_o land_n good_n and_o life_n have_v admonish_v you_o both_o twain_o of_o that_o canker_a poison_n of_o papistry_n that_o you_o foster_v and_o pamper_v to_o your_o own_o perdition_n and_o utter_a destruction_n of_o yourselves_o and_o you_o soul_n and_o body_n for_o now_o and_o ever_o i_o think_v it_o my_o duty_n see_v your_o destruction_n to_o man_n judgement_n to_o draw_v so_o near_o hom_n much_o or_o how_o little_a soever_o they_o have_v prevail_v 60._o yet_o once_o again_o to_o admonish_v you_o both_o to_o give_v testimony_n to_o that_o truth_n which_o my_o brethren_n have_v write_v and_o especial_o to_o stir_v your_o heart_n to_o repentance_n or_o at_o the_o least_o to_o offer_v myself_o a_o witness_n against_o you_o for_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n and_o his_o righteous_a judgement_n which_o doubtless_o if_o your_o heart_n be_v harden_v against_o you_o both_o be_v at_o hand_n to_o be_v utter_v thus_o by_o our_o writing_n who_o it_o please_v god_n to_o stir_v up_o of_o your_o nation_n all_o man_n that_o now_o l●ve_v and_o that_o shall_v come_v after_o we_o shall_v have_v cause_n also_o to_o praise_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n that_o so_o oft_o admonish_v before_o he_o strike_v and_o to_o consider_v his_o just_a punishment_n when_o he_o shall_v pour_v forth_o his_o vengeance_n give_v ear_n therefore_o betimes_o o_o britain_n for_o of_o that_o name_n both_o rejoice_v while_o the_o lord_n call_v exhort_v and_o admonish_v that_o be_v the_o acceptable_a time_n when_o he_o will_v be_v find_v if_o you_o refuse_v the_o time_n offer_v you_o can_v have_v it_o afterward_o though_o with_o tear_n as_o do_v esau_n you_o do_v seem_v to_o seek_v it_o yet_o once_o again_o in_o god_n behalf_n i_o do_v offer_v you_o the_o very_a mean_n which_o if_o god_n of_o his_o mercy_n grant_v you_o grace_n to_o follow_v i_o doubt_v nothing_o but_o that_o of_o all_o your_o enemy_n speedy_o you_o shall_v be_v deliver_v you_o rejoice_v at_o his_o word_n i_o be_o sure_a if_o you_o have_v any_o hope_n of_o the_o performance_n then_o harken_v to_o the_o matter_n which_o i_o write_v unto_o you_o not_o forth_o of_o man_n dream_n and_o fable_n nor_o forth_o of_o profane_a history_n paint_v with_o man_n wisdom_n vain_a eloquence_n or_o subtle_a reason_n but_o forth_o of_o the_o infallible_a word_n of_o god_n be_v not_o this_o god_n curse_n and_o threaten_a among_o many_o other_o pronounce_v against_o the_o sinful_a land_n and_o disobedient_a people_n 28._o that_o stranger_n shall_v devour_v the_o fruit_n of_o thy_o land_n and_o be_v above_o thou_o etc._n etc._n and_o thy_o strong_a wall_n wherein_o thou_o trust_v shall_v be_v destroy_v etc._n etc._n and_o do_v not_o isaiah_n reckon_v this_o also_o as_o the_o extremity_n of_o all_o plague_n for_o the_o wickedness_n of_o the_o people_n to_o have_v woman_n raise_v up_o to_o rule_v over_o they_o 3._o but_o what_o say_v the_o same_o prophet_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o pprophecy_n for_o a_o remedy_n against_o these_o and_o all_o other_o evil_n 61._o your_o hand_n be_v full_a of_o blood_n say_v he_o o_o you_o prince_n of_o sodom_n and_o people_n of_o gomorrah_n but_o wash_v you_o make_v you_o clean_o take_v away_o your_o wicked_a thought_n forth_o of_o my_o sight_n ●ease_v to_o do_v evil_a learn_v to_o do_v well_o etc._n etc._n then_o will_v i_o turn_v my_o hand_n to_o thou_o and_o purge_v out_o all_o thy_o dross_n and_o take_v away_o thy_o tin_n and_o i_o will_v restore_v thy_o judge_n as_o aforetime_o and_o counsellor_n as_o of_o old_a and_o moses_n say_v before_o in_o the_o place_n allege_v that_o if_o thou_o will_v hear_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o lord_n 〈◊〉_d god_n 28._o and_o do_v his_o commandment_n thou_o shall_v be_v bless_v 〈◊〉_d the_o town_n and_o bless_v in_o the_o field_n the_o lord_n shall_v ca●●●_n thy_o enemy_n that_o rise_v up_o against_o thou_o to_o fall_v befo●●_n thou_o etc._n etc._n lo_o the_o way_n in_o few_o word_n o_o brittany_n 〈◊〉_d win_v god_n favour_n and_o therefore_o to_o overcome_v thin●_n enemy_n but_o to_o print_v this_o more_o deep_o upon_o your_o heart_n o_o you_o prince_n and_o people_n of_o that_o island_n who_o god_n have_v begin_v to_o punish_v seek_v i_o want_v you_o no_o snift_v hole_n to_o excuse_v your_o fault_n no_o political_a
practice_n to_o resist_v god_n vengeance_n submit_v yourselves_o to_o he_o 62._o who_o hold_v you●_n breath_n in_o your_o nostril_n who_o with_o one_o blast_n of_o hi●_n mouth_n can_v destroy_v all_o his_o enemy_n embrace_v hi●_n son_n christ_n and_o repent_v betimes_o for_o your_o obstinacy_n against_o he_o and_o his_o word_n and_o for_o your_o cruelty_n against_o his_o servant_n repent_v repent_v for_o repentance_n be_v the_o only_a way_n of_o your_o redress_n and_o deliverance_n consider_v how_o the_o lord_n have_v entreat_v israel_n and_o juda_n his_o own_o people_n how_o oft_o they_o trespass_v and_o how_o he_o give_v they_o over_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o their_o enemy_n but_o whensoever_o they_o repent_v and_o turn_v again_o to_o god_n unfeigned_o he_o send_v they_o judge_n and_o deliverer_n king_n and_o saviour_n noah_n pronounce_v that_o within_o a_o hundred_o and_o twenty_o year_n all_o flesh_n shall_v be_v destroy_v we_o have_v many_o noah_n that_o so_o cry_v in_o our_o time_n yet_o no_o man_n repent_v all_o the_o time_n that_o noah_n be_v prepare_v for_o the_o ark_n to_o avoid_v god_n vengeance_n the_o multitude_n deride_v this_o holy_a prophet_n as_o the_o multitude_n of_o you_o two_o realm_n do_v at_o this_o day_n deride_v all_o they_o that_o by_o obedience_n to_o god_n word_n seek_v the_o mean_n appoint_v to_o avoid_v god_n judgement_n then_o the_o people_n will_v not_o repent_v 63._o but_o as_o if_o they_o shall_v live_v for_o ever_o they_o marry_v they_o banquet_v they_o build_v they_o plant_v deride_v god_n messenger_n do_v not_o you_o the_o like_a i_o appeal_v to_o your_o own_o conscience_n the_o lord_n call_v to_o fast_v say_v the_o prophet_n isaiah_n to_o mortify_v themselves_o and_o kill_v their_o lust_n but_o they_o kill_v sheep_n and_o bullock_n jeremy_n cry_v for_o tear_n and_o lamentation_n they_o laugh_v and_o mock-malachi_n cry_v to_o the_o people_n of_o his_o time_n turn_v unto_o i_o and_o i_o will_v turn_v unto_o you_o say_v the_o lord_n of_o host_n and_o they_o proud_o answer_v wherein_o shall_v we_o turn_v be_v you_o not_o such_o do_v you_o not_o ask_v wherein_o shall_v we_o turn_v when_o you_o will_v not_o know_v your_o sin_n you_o will_v not_o confess_v and_o acknowledge_v your_o fault_n though_o you_o go_v a_o whore_v in_o every_o street_n town_n and_o village_n with_o your_o idol_n though_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o oppress_a cry_n every_o where_o against_o you_o for_o vengeance_n so_o that_o see_v no_o take_v of_o repentance_n i_o can_v cry_v unto_o you_o with_o john_n baptist_n o_o you_o generation_n of_o viper_n who_o have_v teach_v you_o to_o fly_v from_o the_o wrath_n to_o come_v 64._o but_o i_o will_v wound_v you_o no_o more_o with_o the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n or_o of_o this_o holy_a saint_n of_o god_n john_n baptist_n but_o with_o our_o saviour_n christ_n two_o most_o sweet_a parable_n of_o the_o two_o son_n and_o of_o the_o tilmen_fw-mi to_o who_o he_o set_v his_o vineyard_n i_o will_v labour_v to_o set_v before_o your_o eye_n your_o rebellion_n hypocrisy_n and_o cruelty_n if_o so_o i_o can_v bring_v any_o of_o you_o to_o repentance_n he_o have_v call_v you_o by_o his_o word_n many_o a_o time_n to_o work_v in_o his_o vineyard_n i_o ask_v what_o you_o have_v answer_v some_o of_o you_o have_v say_v plain_o like_o rebellious_a child_n that_o you_o will_v not_o do_v it_o that_o you_o will_v not_o work_v in_o your_o father_n vineyard_n shall_v i_o apply_v this_o part_n to_o scotland_n scotland_n be_v indeed_o call_v most_o plain_o and_o evident_o through_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n both_o by_o their_o own_o faithful_a countryman_n 65._o and_o also_o by_o earnest_a travel_n of_o our_o english_a nation_n to_o come_v into_o the_o lord_n vineyard_n in_o the_o time_n of_o king_n edward_n the_o six_o but_o refuse_v that_o time_n as_o you_o know_v the_o vineyard_n in_o england_n by_o the_o child_n of_o god_n be_v not_o altogether_o neglect_v and_o then_o most_o earnest_o be_v ye●●_n o_o brethren_n of_o scotland_n require_v to_o join_v han●●_n with_o we_o in_o the_o lord_n work_v but_o satan_n alas_o will_v not_o suffer_v it_o his_o old_a fostered_a malice_n and_o antichrist_n his_o son_n can_v not_o abide_v that_o christ_n shall_v grow●●_n to_o strong_a by_o join_v that_o isle_n together_o in_o perfect_a religion_n etc._n etc._n lest_o this_o one_o island_n shall_v become_v a_o safe_a sanctuary_n as_o it_o begin_v to_o be_v to_o all_o the_o persecute_v in_o all_o place_n god_n have_v also_o by_o the_o blood_n of_o his_o saint_n shed_v among_o you_o by_o favour_n and_o friendship_n by_o war_n and_o the_o sword_n yea_o by_o famine_n and_o pestilence_n and_o also_o by_o all_o other_o mean_v call_v you_o to_o labour_v in_o his_o vineyard_n but_o to_o this_o day_n alas_o we_o hear_v not_o of_o your_o humble_a obedience_n but_o still_o you_o say_v with_o stubborn_a face_n we_o will_v not_o labour_v we_o will_v not_o be_v bind_v to_o such_o thraldom_n etc._n etc._n you_o think_v perchance_o i_o be_o too_o sharp_a and_o that_o i_o accuse_v you_o more_o than_o you_o deserve_v for_o among_o you_o many_o do_v know_v the_o will_n of_o your_o father_n and_o many_o make_v profession_n of_o his_o gospel_n but_o consider_v brethren_n that_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o know_v the_o commandment_n and_o to_o profess_v the_o same_o in_o mouth_n but_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o you_o refuse_v yourselves_o your_o own_o pleasure_n appetite_n and_o your_o own_o wisdom_n if_o you_o shall_v be_v judge_v faithful_a labourer_n in_o the_o lord●_n vineyard_n and_o that_o you_o bear_v the_o burden_n together_o with_o your_o brethren_n and_o suffer_v heat_n and_o sweat_n before_o you_o taste_v the_o fruit_n with_o they_o god_n will_v no●●_n be_v content_a that_o you_o look_v over_o the_o hedge_n and_o behold_v the_o labour_n of_o your_o brethren_n but_o he_o require_v that_o you_o put_v your_o hand_n also_o to_o the_o labour_n that_o you_o travel_v continual_o to_o pluck_v up_o all_o unprofitable_a weed_n though_o in_o so_o do_v the_o thorn_n prick_v you_o to_o the_o bone_n that_o you_o assist_v your_o brethren_n in_o their_o labour_n though_o it_o be_v with_o the_o jeopardy_n of_o your_o life_n the_o loss_n of_o your_o substance_n and_o displeasure_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n 68_o i_o must_v needs_o leave_v thou_o o_o scotland_n after_o i_o have_v advertise_v thou_o of_o this_o that_o thou_o follow_v not_o the_o example_n of_o england_n but_o let_v thy_o reformation_n be_v full_a and_o plain_a according_a to_o god_n holy_a will_n and_o word_n without_o addition_n let_v all_o the_o plant_n which_o thy_o heavenly_a father_n have_v not_o plant_v be_v root_v out_o at_o once_o let_v not_o avarice_n blind_v thou_o nor_o worldly_a wisdom_n discourage_v thy_o heart_n let_v none_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o a_o teacher_n that_o be_v know_v to_o be_v a_o fosterer_n of_o superstition_n or_o any_o kind_n of_o wickedness_n thus_o must_v thou_o o_o scotland_n repent_v thy_o former_a inobedience_n if_o that_o thou_o will_v be_v approve_v of_o the_o lord_n and_o now_o do_v i_o return_v to_o thou_o o_o england_n i_o do_v liken_v thou_o to_o the_o second_o son_n in_o the_o parable_n which_o answer_v his_o father_n with_o flatter_a word_n say_v i_o go_v father_n but_o yet_o he_o go_v not_o at_o al●_n for_o since_o the_o time_n i_o have_v any_o remembrance_n our_o heavenly_a father_n of_o his_o great_a mercy_n have_v not_o cease_v to_o call_v thou_o into_o his_o vineyard_n and_o to_o these_o late_a day_n thou_o have_v always_o say_v that_o thou_o will_v enter_v and_o be_v obedient_a in_o the_o time_n of_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o when_o by_o tyndal_n frith_n biln●y_n and_o other_o his_o saithful_a servant_n god_n call_v england_n to_o dress_v his_o vineyard_n many_o promise_v full_a fair_a but_o what_o fruit_n follow_v nothing_o but_o bitter_a grape_n yea_o brier_n and_o bramble_n the_o wormwood_n of_o avarice_n the_o gall_n of_o cruelty_n the_o poison_n of_o filthy_a fornication_n flow_v from_o head_n to_o foot_n the_o contempt_n of_o god_n and_o open_a defence_n of_o the_o cake-idol_n by_o open_a proclamation_n to_o be_v read_v in_o the_o church_n instead_o of_o god_n scripture_n 70._o it_o grieve_v i_o to_o write_v these_o evil_n of_o my_o country_n save_v only_o that_o i_o must_v needs_o declare_v what_o fruit_n be_v find_v in_o the_o vineyard_n after_o you_o promise_v to_o work_v therein_o to_o move_v you_o to_o repentance_n and_o to_o justify_v god_n judgement_n how_o grievons_o soever_o he_o shall_v plague_v you_o hereafter_o wherefore_o i_o desire_v you_o to_o call_v to_o remembrance_n your_o best_a state_n under_o king_n edward_n when_o all_o me●●_n with_o general_a consent_n promise_v to_o work_v in_o th●●_n vineyard_n and_o you_o shall_v have_v cause_n
pour_v upon_o the_o diligent_a hearer_n of_o his_o word_n as_o be_v in_o david_n who_o desire_v be_v a_o king_n 84._o rather_o to_o be_v a_o doorkeeper_n in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n then_o to_o dwell_v in_o the_o tent_n of_o the_o ungodly_a lament_v nothing_o so_o much_o the_o injury_n do_v to_o he_o by_o his_o son_n absalon_n which_o be_v not_o small_a as_o that_o he_o be_v deprive_v of_o the_o comfortable_a exercise_n in_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o then_o be_v in_o zion_n neither_o do_v there_o appear_v in_o such_o person_n that_o greedy_a desire_n whereof_o isaiah_n make_v mention_v which_o ought_v to_o be_v in_o the_o professor_n of_o the_o gospel_n 2._o who_o never_o will_v cease_v or_o rest_v till_o they_o shall_v climb_v up_o to_o the_o lord_n hill_n mean_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n say_v one_o to_o another_o let_v we_o ascend_v to_o the_o hill_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o the_o house_n of_o the_o god_n of_o jacob_n and_o he_o will_v teach_v we_o his_o way_n and_o we_o shall_v walk_v in_o his_o footstep_n for_o the_o law_n shall_v come_v forth_o of_o zion_n and_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n from_o jerusalem_n which_o zeal_n the_o prophet_n do_v not_o mention_v in_o vain_a but_o to_o show_v what_o a_o thirst_n and_o earnest_a desire_n shall_v be_v in_o true_a christian_n and_o how_o the_o same_o appear_v in_o seek_v and_o resort_v to_o those_o place_n where_o it_o be_v set_v forth_o in_o great_a abundance_n and_o perfection_n as_o be_v after_o christ_n ascension_n in_o jerusalem_n and_o as_o that_o zeal_n show_v they_o to_o be_v of_o christ_n by_o the_o like_a must_v we_o be_v judge_v christian_n also_o that_o if_o we_o flee_v for_o christ_n the_o place_n whereunto_o we_o flee_v may_v bear_v witness_n for_o what_o cause_n we_o be_v flee_v 229._o neither_o be_v it_o a_o sufficient_a excuse_n which_o many_o allege_v that_o they_o believe_v to_o be_v save_v by_o christ_n that_o they_o have_v sufficient_a knowledge_n of_o their_o duty_n and_o the_o rest_n they_o can_v supply_v by_o their_o own_o diligence_n i_o dare_v say_v their_o faith_n be_v not_o so_o much_o but_o they_o have_v need_v to_o desire_v with_o the_o apostle_n lord_n increase_v our_o f●ith_n and_o if_o they_o will_v so_o confess_v why_o do_v they_o forsake_v the_o chief_a mean_n that_o god_n have_v ordain_v which_o be_v the_o open_a congregation_n of_o his_o people_n where_o his_o word_n the_o fountain_n of_o faith_n be_v most_o pure_o preach_v and_o where_o the_o godly_a example_n of_o other_o may_v be_v a_o sharp_a spur_n to_o prick_v they_o forward_o and_o as_o for_o the_o knowledge_n and_o diligence_n of_o such_o there_o may_v be_v no_o buckler_n to_o defend_v their_o do_n for_o if_o they_o have_v those_o gift_n whereof_o they_o boast_v where_o may_v they_o better_o bestow_v they_o then_o in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n except_o they_o will_v say_v they_o be_v bear_v to_o themselves_o and_o have_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n which_o he_o will_v have_v common_a to_o other_o apply_v to_o their_o own_o private_a fancy_n which_o be_v to_o lap_v they_o up_o in_o a_o clout_n and_o not_o to_o put_v they_o forth_o to_o the_o vantage_n of_o the_o owner_n as_o do_v the_o unprofitable_a servant_n 230._o and_o as_o do_v all_o they_o to_o who_o god_n have_v give_v either_o learning_n counsel_n or_o worldly_a substance_n who_o either_o for_o the_o strength_n of_o city_n pleasantness_n of_o the_o air_n traffic_n or_o merchandise_n or_o for_o any_o other_o worldly_a respect_n or_o policy_n do_v absent_a themselves_o from_o the_o congregation_n and_o company_n of_o their_o poor_a brethren_n where_o christ_n have_v advance_v his_o standard_n and_o blow_v his_o trumpet_n if_o god_n then_o give_v you_o not_o strength_n at_o the_o first_o to_o stand_v in_o his_o profession_n to_o the_o death_n nor_o that_o you_o can_v be_v quiet_a in_o conscience_n abide_v in_o your_o country_n you_o see_v how_o his_o mercy_n have_v give_v you_o liberty_n to_o kill_v and_o what_o place_n he_o have_v appoint_v you_o to_o flee_v unto_o that_o be_v where_o you_o may_v do_v good_a to_o yourselves_o and_o other_o where_o you_o may_v be_v free_a from_o superstition_n and_o idolatry_n where_o your_o faith_n may_v be_v increase_v and_o not_o diminish_v and_o yourselves_o strengthen_v and_o confirm_v and_o more_o strong_o arm_v but_o if_o you_o in_o tarry_v will_v neither_o stand_v manful_o to_o christ_n your_o master_n but_o betray_v he_o do_v as_o the_o papist_n do_v nor_o yet_o with_o thanks_o use_v this_o remedy_n that_o god_n have_v grant_v to_o our_o infirmity_n to_o resort_v to_o his_o church_n godly_o institute_v what_o answer_n shall_v you_o be_v able_a to_o make_v to_o his_o majesty_n when_o he_o shall_v call_v for_o a_o account_n of_o your_o do_n how_o shall_v you_o avoid_v his_o wrathful_a indignation_n now_o ready_a to_o be_v pour_v upon_o his_o enemy_n for_o in_o take_v part_n with_o their_o impiety_n you_o must_v be_v partaker_n of_o their_o cup_n likewise_o neither_o be_v this_o any_o new_a or_o hard_a doctrine_n that_o may_v exceed_v your_o capacity_n but_o may_v rather_o be_v term_v your_o a._n b._n c._n and_o first_o principle_n wherein_o none_o ought_v to_o be_v ignorant_a that_o if_o we_o will_v be_v christ_n scholar_n we_o must_v learn_v to_o bear_v his_o cross_n and_o to_o follow_v he_o not_o to_o cast_v it_o off_o our_o shoulder_n with_o the_o enemy_n and_o run_v from_o he_o be_v no_o more_o deceive_v in_o so_o plain_a a_o matter_n 233._o if_o the_o lord_n be_v god_n follow_v he_o if_o b●al_v be_v god_n go_v after_o he_o let_v not_o the_o example_n of_o any_o lead_v you_o into_o error_n for_o man_n be_v but_o mortal_a trust_v in_o the_o lord_n for_o he_o be_v a_o sure_a rock_n trust_v not_o your_o own_o shift_n for_o they_o will_v deceive_v you_o mark_v the_o end_n of_o other_o and_o in_o time_n be_v warn_v these_o lesson_n be_v hard_a to_o the_o flesh_n but_o ea●●e_v to_o the_o spirit_n the_o way_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v a_o strait_a path_n but_o most_o faithful_a sure_a and_o comfortable_a from_o geneva_n this_o first_o of_o jan._n an._n 1558._o goose._n john_n goose_n burn_v in_o england_n an._n 1473._o be_v press_v by_o the_o sheriff_n of_o l●ndon_n to_o recant_v 57_o and_o so_o deliver_v himself_o from_o death_n answer_v that_o for_o his_o religion_n he_o be_v at_o a_o pass_n and_o neither_o can_v nor_o will_v recant_v the_o same_o 939._o when_o the_o sheriff_n give_v he_o some_o meat_n of_o which_o he_o do_v eat_v hearty_o he_o say_v to_o the_o stander_n by_o i_o eat_v now_o a_o good_a and_o competent_a dinner_n for_o i_o shall_v pass_v a_o sharp_a shower_n before_o i_o go_v to_o supper_n gordius_n 117._o when_o a_o solemn_a feast_n be_v celebrate_v in_o caesarea_n in_o honour_n to_o mars_n gordius_n a_o citizen_n thereof_o who_o have_v be_v a_o centurion_n and_o have_v choose_v exile_n for_o sometime_o in_o the_o heat_n of_o persecution_n leave_v the_o desert_n wherein_o he_o live_v in_o exile_n and_o get_v he_o up_o into_o the_o chief_a place_n of_o the_o theatre_n and_o with_o a_o loud_a voice_n cry_v out_o behold_v i_o be_o find_v of_o they_o that_o seek_v i_o not_o and_o to_o those_o that_o ask_v not_o for_o i_o have_v i_o open_o appear_v the_o sheriff_n ask_v he_o who_o he_o be_v from_o whence_o he_o come_v and_o for_o what_o he_o come_v thither_o i_o be_o come_v say_v he_o to_o publish_v that_o i_o set_v nothing_o by_o your_o desire_n against_o the_o christian_a religion_n but_o that_o i_o profess_v jesus_n christ_n to_o be_v my_o hope_n and_o safety_n the_o sheriff_n threaten_v he_o with_o all_o kind_n of_o torment_n it_o will_v be_v to_o i_o a_o damage_n say_v he_o if_o i_o shall_v not_o endure_v divers_a torment_n for_o christ_n cause_n when_o he_o be_v torment_v he_o lift_v up_o his_o eye_n to_o heaven_n say_v the_o lord_n be_v my_o helper_n i_o will_v not_o fear_v the_o thing_n that_o man_n can_v do_v unto_o i_o i_o will_v learn_v no_o evil_n for_o thou_o lord_n be_v with_o i_o he_o blame_v the_o tormentor_n if_o they_o favour_v he_o at_o all_o the_o sheriff_n promise_v great_a thing_n if_o he_o will_v deny_v christ_n it_o lie_v not_o in_o you_o say_v he_o to_o place_v any_o in_o authority_n which_o be_v worthy_a to_o have_v a_o place_n in_o heaven_n when_o he_o be_v lead_v out_o of_o the_o city_n to_o be_v burn_v many_o with_o tear_n beg_v he_o to_o save_v himself_o but_o he_o say_v weep_v not_o i_o beseech_v you_o for_o i_o but_o rather_o for_o those_o that_o bring_v we_o to_o the_o fire_n and_o thereby_o purchase_v hell_n fire_n to_o themselves_o true_o i_o be_o ready_a for_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n to_o suffer_v
you_o do_v require_v i_o so_o to_o do_v i_o will_v not_o refuse_v to_o go_v with_o you_o and_o if_o it_o happen_v that_o they_o evil_o entreat_v i_o yet_o nevertheless_o i_o trust_v in_o my_o lord_n jesus_n that_o he_o will_v so_o comfort_v and_o strengthen_v i_o that_o i_o shall_v desire_v much_o rather_o to_o die_v for_o his_o glory_n sake_n then_o to_o deny_v the_o verity_n which_o i_o have_v learn_v by_o his_o holy_a scripture_n when_o he_o come_v to_o the_o cardinal_n they_o tell_v he_o they_o have_v hear_v that_o he_o have_v teach_v great_a and_o manifest_a error_n through_o the_o realm_n of_o bohemia_n etc._n etc._n you_o shall_v understand_v answer_v mr._n hus_n that_o i_o be_o thus_o mind_v and_o affection_a that_o i_o shall_v rather_o choose_v to_o die_v than_o i_o shall_v be_v find_v culpable_a of_o one_o only_a error_n much_o less_o of_o many_o and_o great_a error_n for_o this_o cause_n i_o be_o willing_o come_v to_o the_o general_a council_n to_o receive_v correction_n if_o any_o man_n can_v prove_v any_o error_n in_o i_o 791._o some_o of_o the_o article_n present_v to_o the_o council_n against_o he_o 4_o he_o say_v that_o all_o priest_n be_v of_o like_a power_n 8_o he_o hold_v this_o opinion_n that_o a_o man_n be_v once_o ordain_v a_o priest_n or_o a_o deacon_n can_v be_v forbid_v or_o keep_v back_o from_o the_o office_n of_o preach_v 799._o when_o several_a false_a witness_n rise_v up_o against_o he_o he_o say_v albeit_o they_o be_v as_o many_o more_o in_o number_n as_o they_o be_v i_o do_v much_o more_o esteem_n yea_o and_o without_o comparison_n regard_v the_o witness_n of_o my_o lord_n god_n before_o the_o witness_n of_o all_o my_o adversary_n 800._o he_o be_v ask_v whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o he_o to_o appeal_v unto_o christ_n answer_v very_o i_o do_v affirm_v before_o you_o all_o that_o there_o be_v no_o more_o just_a nor_o effectual_a plea_n then_o that_o which_o be_v make_v unto_o christ_n forasmuch_o as_o the_o law_n do_v determine_v that_o to_o appeal_n be_v no_o other_o thing_n then_o in_o a_o cause_n of_o grief_n or_o wrong_n do_v by_o a_o inferior_a judge_n to_o implore_v and_o require_v aid_n and_o remedy_n at_o a_o high_a judge_n hand_n who_o be_v then_o a_o high_a judge_n than_o christ_n who_o can_v know_v or_o judge_v the_o matter_n more_o just_o or_o with_o more_o equity_n in_o he_o be_v find_v no_o deceit_n nor_o can_v he_o be_v deceive_v who_o can_v better_a help_v the_o miserable_a and_o oppress_v than_o he_o it_o be_v in_o his_o accusation_n that_o he_o counsel_v the_o people_n to_o resist_v with_o the_o sword_n all_o such_o as_o do_v gainsay_v his_o doctrine_n etc._n etc._n he_o answer_v that_o he_o at_o all_o time_n when_o he_o preach_v do_v diligent_o admonish_v and_o warn_v the_o people_n that_o they_o shall_v arm_v themselves_o to_o defend_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n according_a to_o the_o say_n of_o tbe_n apostle_n with_o the_o helmet_n and_o sword_n of_o salvation_n &_o that_o he_o never_o speak_v of_o any_o material_a sword_n but_o of_o that_o which_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n some_o more_o article_n against_o he_o take_v out_o of_o his_o treatise_n of_o the_o church_n 802._o 1_o there_o be_v but_o one_o holy_a universal_a or_o catholic_n church_n which_o be_v the_o universal_a company_n of_o all_o the_o predestinate_a 6_o a_o reprobate_a man_n be_v never_o a_o member_n of_o the_o holy_a church_n 804._o 18_o a_o heretic_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v commit_v to_o the_o secular_a power_n to_o be_v put_v to_o death_n for_o it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o he_o suffer_v the_o ecclesiastical_a censure_n in_o his_o appeal_n 805._o forasmuch_o as_o the_o most_o mighty_a lord_n one_o in_o essence_n three_o in_o person_n be_v both_o the_o chief_a and_o first_o and_o also_o the_o last_o and_o uttermost_a refuge_n of_o all_o those_o which_o be_v oppress_v and_o forasmuch_o as_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n very_a god_n and_o man_n be_v compass_v in_o with_o the_o priest_n scribes_z and_o pharisee_n wicked_a judge_n and_o witness_n etc._n etc._n have_v leave_v behind_o he_o this_o godly_a example_n for_o they_o that_o shall_v come_v after_o he_o to_o the_o intent_n they_o shall_v commit_v all_o their_o cause_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n o_o lord_n behold_v my_o affliction_n etc._n etc._n thou_o be_v my_o protector_n and_o defender_n o_o lord_n thou_o have_v give_v i_o understanding_n and_o i_o have_v acknowledge_v thou_o for_o my_o own_o part_n i_o have_v be_v as_o a_o meek_a lamb_n which_o be_v lead_v unto_o sacrifice_n and_o have_v not_o resist_v against_o they_o deliver_v i_o from_o my_o enemy_n for_o thou_o be_v my_o god_n i_o appeal_v to_o the_o sovereign_n and_o most_o just_a judge_n who_o be_v not_o defile_v with_o cruelty_n nor_o can_v be_v corrupt_v with_o gift_n and_o reward_n neither_o yet_o be_v deceive_v by_o false_a witness_n ay_o john_n hus_n do_v present_a and_o offer_v this_o my_o appeal_n to_o my_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n 806._o my_o just_a judge_n who_o know_v and_o defend_v and_o just_o judge_v every_o man_n just_a and_o true_a cause_n the_o day_n before_o his_o condemnation_n when_o four_o bishop_n be_v send_v by_o the_o emperor_n to_o he_o to_o know_v whether_o he_o will_v stand_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o council_n 816._o mr._n john_n de_fw-fr clum_o speak_v thus_o unto_o he_o mr._n i._o hus_n i_o require_v you_o if_o you_o know_v yourself_o guilty_a of_o any_o of_o those_o error_n which_o be_v object_v against_o you_o that_o you_o will_v not_o be_v ashamed_a to_o alter_v your_o mind_n to_o the_o will_n of_o the_o council_n if_o contraiwise_o i_o will_v be_v no_o author_n to_o you_o that_o you_o shall_v do_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o your_o conscience_n but_o rather_o to_o suffer_v any_o kind_n of_o punishment_n then_o to_o deny_v that_o which_o you_o have_v know_v to_o be_v the_o truth_n mr._n hus_n with_o tear_n answer_v very_o as_o before_o i_o have_v oftentimes_o do_v i_o do_v take_v the_o most_o high_a god_n for_o my_o witness_n that_o i_o be_o ready_a with_o my_o whole_a heart_n and_o mind_n if_o the_o council_n can_v instruct_v i_o any_o better_a by_o the_o scripture_n to_o change_v my_o purpose_n one_o of_o the_o bishop_n tell_v he_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o arrogant_a as_o to_o prefer_v his_o own_o opinion_n before_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o whole_a council_n 817._o he_o say_v if_o he_o which_o be_v the_o mean_a or_o least_o in_o all_o this_o council_n can_v convict_v i_o of_o error_n i_o will_v with_o a_o humble_a heart_n and_o mind_n do_v whatsoever_o the_o council_n shall_v require_v of_o i_o 819._o when_o they_o condemn_v his_o appeal_n as_o heretical_a he_o say_v o_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o word_n be_v open_o condemn_v here_o in_o this_o council_n unto_o thou_o again_o do_v i_o appeal_v which_o when_o thou_o be_v evil_a entreat_v of_o thy_o enemy_n do_v appeal_v unto_o god_n thy_o father_n commit_v thy_o cause_n unto_o a_o most_o just_a judge_n that_o by_o thy_o example_n we_o also_o be_v oppress_v with_o manifest_a wrong_n and_o injury_n shall_v flee_v unto_o thou_o whilst_o they_o be_v read_v his_o sentence_n he_o interrupt_v they_o often_o 820._o and_o special_o when_o he_o be_v charge_v with_o obstinacy_n he_o say_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n i_o be_v never_o obstinate_a but_o as_o always_o heretofore_o even_o so_o now_o again_o i_o desire_v to_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o i_o do_v profess_v myself_o to_o be_v so_o desirous_a of_o the_o truth_n that_o if_o i_o may_v by_o one_o only_a word_n subvert_v the_o error_n of_o all_o heretic_n i_o will_v not_o refuse_v to_o enter_v into_o what_o peril_n soever_o it_o be_v to_o speak_v it_o when_o the_o sentence_n be_v end_v kneel_v down_o upon_o his_o knee_n he_o say_v lord_n jesus_n christ_n forgive_v my_o enemy_n by_o who_o thou_o know_v that_o i_o be_o false_o accuse_v etc._n etc._n forgive_v they_o for_o thy_o great_a mercy_n sake_n when_o he_o be_v degrade_v he_o speak_v to_o the_o people_n thus_o these_o lord_n and_o bishop_n do_v exhort_v and_o counsel_v i_o that_o i_o shall_v here_o confess_v before_o you_o all_o that_o i_o have_v err_v the_o which_o thing_n to_o do_v if_o it_o may_v be_v do_v with_o the_o infamy_n and_o reproach_n of_o man_n only_o they_o may_v peradventure_o easy_o persuade_v i_o thereunto_o but_o now_o true_o i_o be_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o lord_n my_o god_n without_o who_o great_a ignominy_n and_o grudge_n of_o my_o own_o conscience_n i_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n do_v that_o which_o they_o require_v of_o i_o with_o what_o countenance_n shall_v i_o behold_v the_o heaven_n with_o what_o face_n shall_v i_o look_v upon_o
land_n and_o life_n then_o farewell_n suit_n farewell_n land_n farewell_n child_n farewell_n friend_n yea_o and_o farewell_n life_n too_o and_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o true_a honour_n of_o the_o everliving_a god_n farewell_n all_o at_o the_o place_n of_o her_o execution_n she_o exhort_v all_o woman_n to_o be_v strong_a and_o constant_a for_o say_v she_o you_o be_v redeem_v with_o as_o dear_a a_o price_n as_o man_n 306._o for_o although_o you_o be_v make_v of_o the_o rib_n of_o the_o man_n yet_o be_v you_o all_o of_o his_o flesh_n so_o that_o also_o in_o the_o case_n and_o trial_n of_o your_o faith_n towards_o god_n you_o ought_v to_o be_v as_o strong_a mr._n ward_n call_v her_o julitta_n 141._o and_o record_v her_o speech_n thus_o we_o woman_n receive_v not_o only_a flesh_n from_o man_n but_o be_v bone_n of_o their_o bone_n and_o therefore_o aught_o to_o be_v as_o strong_a in_o christ_n cause_n mr._n fox_n out_o of_o basil_n tell_v the_o story_n thus_o 123._o that_o when_o the_o judge_n pass_v sentence_n against_o julitta_n she_o say_v farewell_o riches_n and_o welcome_a poverty_n farewell_n life_n and_o welcome_a death_n all_o that_o i_o have_v if_o it_o be_v a_o thousand_o time_n more_o will_v i_o rather_o lose_v then_o speak_v one_o wicked_a and_o blasphemous_a word_n against_o god_n my_o creator_n i_o yield_v thou_o most_o hearty_a thanks_o o_o my_o god_n for_o this_o grace_n that_o i_o can_v contemn_v and_o despise_v this_o frail_a and_o transitory_a world_n esteem_v christian_n profession_n above_o all_o treasure_n afterward_o when_o any_o question_n be_v demand_v her_o answer_n be_v i_o be_o the_o servant_n of_o jesus_n christ._n at_o the_o stake_n she_o say_v to_o the_o woman_n behold_v she_o stick_v not_o o_o sister_n to_o labour_v and_o travel_v after_o true_a piety_n and_o godliness_n cease_v to_o accuse_v the_o frailty_n of_o feminine_a nature_n what_o be_v not_o we_o create_v of_o the_o same_o matter_n that_o man_n be_v yea_o after_o god_n image_n and_o similitude_n be_v we_o make_v as_o lively_a as_o they_o not_o flesh_n only_o do_v god_n use_v in_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o woman_n in_o sign_n and_o token_n of_o her_o infirmity_n and_o weakness_n but_o bone_n of_o bone_n be_v she_o in_o token_n that_o she_o must_v be_v strong_a in_o the_o true_a and_o live_a god_n all_o falsehood_n forsake_v constant_a in_o faith_n all_o infidelity_n renounce_v patient_a in_o adversity_n all_o worldly_a ease_n refuse_v wax_v weary_a my_o dear_a sister_n of_o your_o life_n lead_v in_o darkness_n and_o be_v in_o love_n with_o my_o christ_n my_o god_n my_o redeemer_n my_o comforter_n which_o be_v the_o true_a light_n of_o the_o world_n persuade_v yourselves_o or_o rather_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o live_a god_n persuade_v you_o that_o there_o be_v a_o world_n to_o come_v wherein_o the_o worshipper_n of_o idol_n and_o devil_n shall_v be_v torment_v perpetual_o and_o the_o servant_n of_o the_o high_a god_n be_v crown_v eternal_o jusberg_n 113._o brethren_n say_v justus_n jusberg_n you_o see_v that_o my_o end_n approach_v which_o howsoever_o i_o fear_v as_o a_o man_n burden_v with_o the_o body_n of_o sin_n yet_o be_o i_o resolve_v as_o a_o christian_a joyful_o to_o endure_v it_o be_v assure_v that_o all_o my_o sin_n be_v fasten_v to_o the_o cross_n of_o christ._n juventius_n 132._o chrysostome_n in_o a_o oration_n on_o juventius_n and_o maximus_n two_o martyr_n bring_v in_o this_o objection_n of_o the_o persecutor_n against_o they_o do_v not_o you_o see_v other_o of_o your_o rank_n do_v thus_o and_o they_o answer_v thus_o for_o this_o very_a reason_n we_o will_v manful_o stand_v and_o offer_v ourselves_o as_o a_o sacrifice_n for_o the_o breach_n that_o they_o have_v make_v k._n kennedy_n alexander_n kennedy_n 24._o who_o pass_v not_o eighteen_o year_n of_o age_n when_o he_o be_v present_v before_o his_o bloody_a butcherer_n at_o first_o be_v faint_a and_o glad_o will_v have_v recant_v but_o while_o the_o place_n of_o repentance_n be_v deny_v he_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n wrought_v in_o he_o and_o with_o a_o cheerful_a countenance_n and_o a_o joyful_a voice_n upon_o his_o knee_n he_o say_v o_o eternal_a god_n how_o wonderful_a be_v that_o love_n and_o mercy_n that_o thou_o bear_v unto_o mankind_n and_o unto_o i_o the_o most_o caitiff_a and_o miserable_a wretch_n above_o all_o other_o for_o even_o now_o when_o i_o will_v have_v deny_v thou_o and_o thy_o son_n our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n my_o only_a saviour_n and_o so_o have_v cast_v myself_o into_o everlasting_a dammation_n thou_o by_o thy_o own_o hand_n have_v pull_v i_o from_o the_o very_a bottom_n of_o hell_n and_o make_v i_o to_o feel_v that_o heavenly_a comfort_n which_o take_v from_o i_o that_o ungodly_a fear_n wherewith_o before_o i_o be_v oppress_v now_o i_o defy_v death_n do_v what_o you_o please_v i_o praise_v my_o god_n i_o be_o ready_a kerby_n mr._n wingfield_n tell_v he_o 568._o the_o fire_n be_v hot_a the_o terror_n be_v great_a the_o pain_n extreme_a life_n sweet_a better_a it_o be_v betimes_o to_o stick_v to_o mercy_n while_o there_o be_v hope_n of_o life_n then_o rash_o to_o begin_v and_o then_o to_o s●rink_v he_o say_v ah_o mr._n wingfield_n be_v at_o my_o burn_a and_o you_o shall_v say_v there_o stand_v a_o christian_a soldier_n in_o the_o fire_n for_o i_o know_v that_o fire_n water_n sword_z and_o all_o other_o thing_n be_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n and_o he_o will_v suffer_v no_o more_o to_o be_v lay_v upon_o we_o than_o he_o will_v enable_v we_o to_o bear_v when_o sentence_n be_v pass_v against_o he_o 569._o he_o with_o most_o humble_a reverence_n hold_v up_o his_o hand_n and_o bow_v himself_o devout_o say_v praise_v be_v almighty_a god_n kilian_n 162._o to_o such_o as_o ask_v kilian_n a_o dutch_a schoolmaster_n if_o he_o love_v not_o his_o wife_n and_o child_n he_o answer_v yes_o if_o all_o the_o world_n be_v gold_n and_o be_v i_o to_o dispose_v of_o i_o will_v give_v it_o all_o to_o live_v with_o they_o though_o it_o be_v but_o in_o prison_n yet_o be_v my_o soul_n and_o my_o lord_n christ_n dear_a to_o i_o then_o all_o thing_n whatsoever_o knight_n 200._o when_o stephen_n knight_n be_v at_o the_o stake_n he_o pray_v o_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n for_o who_o love_n i_o leave_v willing_o this_o life_n and_o desire_v rather_o the_o bitter_a death_n of_o thy_o cross_n with_o the_o loss_n of_o all_o earthly_a thing_n then_o to_o abide_v the_o blasphemy_n of_o thy_o most_o holy_a name_n or_o to_o obey_v man_n in_o break_v thy_o holy_a commandment_n thou_o see_v o_o lord_n that_o where_o i_o may_v live_v in_o worldly_a wealth_n to_o worship_v a_o false_a god_n and_o honour_v thy_o enemy_n i_o choose_v rather_o the_o torment_n of_o the_o body_n and_o the_o loss_n of_o this_o life_n and_o have_v count_v all_o thing_n but_o vile_a dust_n and_o dung_n that_o i_o may_v win_v thou_o which_o death_n be_v dear_a unto_o i_o than_o thousand_o of_o gold_n and_o silver_n such_o love_n o_o lord_n have_v thou_o lay_v up_o in_o my_o breast_n that_o i_o hunger_n for_o thou_o as_o the_o deer_n that_o be_v wound_v desire_v the_o soil_n send_v thy_o holy_a comforter_n o_o lord_n to_o aid_v comfort_n and_o strengthen_v this_o weak_a piece_n of_o earth_n which_o be_v empty_a of_o all_o strength_n of_o itself_o thou_o remember_v o_o lord_n that_o i_o be_o but_o dust_n and_o able_a to_o do_v nothing_o that_o be_v good_a therefore_o o_o lord_n as_o of_o thy_o accustom_a goodness_n and_o love_n thou_o have_v bid_v i_o to_o this_o banquet_n and_o account_v i_o worthy_a to_o drink_v of_o thy_o own_o cup_n among_o thy_o elect_n even_o so_o give_v i_o strength_n o_o lord_n against_o this_o thy_o element_n which_o as_o to_o my_o sight_n it_o be_v most_o irksome_a and_o terrible_a so_o to_o my_o mind_n it_o may_v at_o thy_o commandment_n as_o a_o obedient_a servant_n be_v sweet_a and_o pleasant_a that_o through_o the_o strength_n of_o thy_o holy_a spirit_n i_o may_v pass_v through_o the_o rage_n of_o this_o fire_n into_o thy_o bosom_n according_a to_o thy_o promise_n and_o for_o this_o mortal_a receive_v a_o immortal_a and_o for_o this_o corruption_n put_v on_o incorruption_n accept_v this_o burnt-sacrifice_n and_o offering_n o_o lord_n not_o for_o the_o sacrifice_n but_o for_o thy_o dear_a son_n sake_n my_o saviour_n for_o who_o testimony_n ●_o offer_v this_o free-will-offering_a with_o all_o my_o heart_n and_o with_o all_o my_o soul._n o_o heavenly_a father_n forgive_v i_o my_o sin_n as_o i_o forgive_v all_o the_o world_n o_o sweet_a son_n of_o god_n my_o saviour_n spread_v thy_o wing_n over_o i_o o_o bless_a and_o holy_a ghost_n through_o who_o merciful_a inspiration_n i_o be_o come_v hither_o conduct_v i_o into_o everlasting_a life_n lord_n
the_o prayer_n of_o the_o church_n with_o these_o word_n take_v up_o the_o man_n who_o you_o account_v another_o god_n at_o the_o end_n of_o his_o sermon_n he_o bemoan_v the_o loss_n that_o the_o church_n and_o state_n of_o scotland_n receive_v by_o the_o death_n of_o that_o man_n and_o say_v that_o as_o god_n in_o his_o mercy_n give_v good_a and_o wise_a ruler_n so_o he_o take_v they_o away_o in_o his_o wrath_n and_o then_o add_v there_o be_v one_o in_o this_o company_n that_o make_v the_o subject_n of_o his_o mirth_n this_o horrible_a murder_n whereat_o all_o good_a man_n have_v cause_n to_o be_v sorry_a i_o tell_v he_o he_o shall_v die_v where_o there_o shall_v be_v none_o to_o lament_v he_o the_o young_a gentleman_n that_o write_v the_o note_n hear_v this_o comination_n go_v home_o and_o say_v to_o his_o sister_n that_o john_n knox_n be_v rave_v to_o speak_v of_o he_o know_v not_o who_o his_o sister_n reply_v with_o tear_n in_o her_o eye_n tell_v he_o that_o none_o of_o john_n knox_n threaten_n fall_v to_o the_o ground_n without_o effect_n and_o so_o it_o fall_v out_o in_o this_o particular_a for_o this_o mr._n thomas_n metellan_n short_o after_o go_v beyond_o sea_n to_o travel_v and_o die_v in_o italy_n have_v no_o know_v man_n to_o assist_v he_o much_o less_o to_o lament_v he_o 4._o he_o tell_v his_o people_n it_o be_v his_o desire_n to_o finish_v and_o close_v his_o preach_n with_o preach_v upon_o the_o history_n of_o christ_n passion_n in_o his_o last_o sermon_n to_o his_o people_n at_o edinburg_n which_o be_v preach_v at_o the_o election_n of_o mr._n james_n lawson_n to_o succeed_v he_o to_o who_o he_o have_v write_v thus_o accelera_fw-la mi_fw-mi frater_fw-la alioqui_fw-la sero_fw-la veny_n make_v haste_n brother_n otherwise_o you_o will_v come_v too_o late_o meaning_n that_o if_o he_o make_v any_o stay_n he_o shall_v find_v he_o dead_a and_o go_v he_o call_v god_n to_o witness_v that_o he_o have_v walk_v in_o a_o good_a conscience_n among_o they_o not_o seek_v to_o please_v man_n nor_o serve_v his_o own_o or_o other_o man_n affection_n but_o in_o all_o sincerity_n and_o truth_n preach_v the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n most_o grave_o and_o pithy_o exhort_v they_o to_o stand_v fast_o in_o the_o faith_n which_o they_o have_v receive_v in_o his_o sickness_n he_o say_v unto_o the_o earl_n of_o morton_n 5._o who_o come_v to_o visit_v he_o my_o lord_n god_n have_v give_v you_o wisdom_n honour_n high_a birth_n riches_n many_o good_a and_o great_a friend_n and_o be_v now_o to_o prefer_v you_o to_o the_o government_n of_o the_o realm_n in_o his_o name_n i_o charge_v you_o that_o you_o will_v use_v these_o blessing_n better_a in_o time_n to_o come_v than_o you_o have_v do_v in_o time_n past_a in_o all_o your_o action_n seek_v first_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n the_o furtherance_n of_o his_o gospel_n the_o maintenance_n of_o his_o church_n and_o ministry_n next_o be_v careful_a of_o the_o king_n and_o the_o welfare_n of_o the_o realm_n if_o you_o shall_v do_v this_o god_n will_v be_v with_o you_o and_o honour_v you_o if_o otherwise_o you_o do_v it_o not_o he_o will_v deprive_v you_o of_o all_o these_o benefit_n and_o your_o end_n shall_v be_v shame_n and_o ignominy_n these_o speech_n the_o earl_n about_o nine_o year_n after_o at_o the_o time_n of_o his_o execution_n call_v to_o mind_n say_v that_o he_o have_v find_v they_o true_a and_o mr._n knox_n therein_o a_o true_a prophet_n a_o day_n or_o two_o before_o his_o death_n he_o send_v for_o mr._n lindsay_n mr._n lawson_n and_o the_o elder_n and_o deacon_n of_o the_o church_n and_o say_v unto_o they_o the_o time_n be_v approach_v for_o which_o i_o have_v long_o thirst_v wherein_o i_o shall_v be_v release_v from_o all_o my_o care_n and_o be_v with_o my_o saviour_n christ_n for_o ever_o and_o now_o god_n be_v my_o witness_n who_o i_o have_v serve_v with_o my_o spirit_n in_o the_o gospel_n of_o his_o son_n that_o i_o have_v teach_v nothing_o but_o the_o true_a and_o sincere_a word_n of_o god_n the_o true_a and_o solid_a doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o that_o the_o end_n i_o propose_v in_o all_o my_o doctrine_n be_v to_o instruct_v the_o ignorant_a to_o confirm_v the_o weak_a to_o comfort_v the_o conscience_n of_o those_o who_o be_v humble_v under_o the_o sense_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o bear_v down_o with_o the_o threaten_n of_o god_n judgement_n such_o as_o be_v proud_a and_o rebellious_a i_o be_o not_o ignorant_a have_v blame_v and_o do_v yet_o blame_v my_o too_o great_a rigour_n and_o severity_n but_o god_n know_v that_o in_o my_o heart_n i_o never_o hate_v the_o person_n of_o those_o against_o who_o i_o thunder_v god_n judgement_n i_o do_v only_o hate_v their_o sin_n and_o labour_v according_a to_o my_o power_n to_o gain_v they_o to_o christ._n that_o i_o do_v forbear_v none_o of_o whatsoever_o condition_n i_o do_v it_o out_o of_o the_o fear_n of_o my_o god_n who_o have_v place_v i_o in_o the_o ministry_n and_o i_o know_v will_v bring_v i_o to_o a_o account_n now_o brethren_n for_o yourselves_o i_o have_v no_o more_o to_o say_v but_o to_o warn_v you_o to_o take_v heed_n to_o the_o flock_n 6._o over_o which_o god_n have_v place_v you_o overseer_n which_o he_o have_v redeem_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o his_o only_o beget_v son_n and_o now_o mr._n lawson_n fight_v a_o good_a fight_n do_v the_o work_n of_o the_o lord_n with_o courage_n and_o with_o a_o willing_a mind_n and_o god_n from_o above_o bless_v you_o and_o the_o church_n whereof_o you_o have_v charge_n against_o it_o so_o long_o as_o it_o continue_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o truth_n the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v this_o speak_v and_o the_o elder_n and_o deacon_n dismiss_v he_o call_v the_o two_o preacher_n to_o he_o and_o say_v there_o be_v one_o thing_n that_o grieve_v i_o exceed_o you_o have_v sometime_o see_v the_o courage_n and_o constancy_n of_o the_o laird_n of_o grange_n in_o the_o cause_n of_o god_n and_o that_o most_o unhappy_a man_n have_v cast_v himself_o away_o i_o pray_v you_o two_o to_o take_v the_o pain_n to_o go_v to_o he_o and_o say_v from_o i_o that_o unless_o he_o forsake_v that_o wicked_a course_n wherein_o he_o be_v enter_v neither_o shall_v the_o rock_n in_o which_o he_o confide_v defend_v he_o nor_o the_o carnal_a wisdom_n of_o that_o man_n who_o he_o count_v half_o a_o god_n this_o be_v young_a lethington_n yield_v he_o help_v but_o shameful_o he_o shall_v be_v pull_v out_o of_o that_o nest_n and_o his_o carcase_n hang_v before_o the_o sun_n and_o so_o it_o fall_v out_o for_o the_o next_o year_n the_o castle_n which_o he_o do_v keep_v against_o the_o king_n authority_n be_v take_v and_o he_o hang_v before_o the_o sun_n the_o soul_n of_o that_o man_n be_v dear_a unto_o i_o and_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a i_o will_v fain_o have_v he_o save_v they_o go_v but_o can_v not_o prevail_v yet_o at_o his_o death_n he_o do_v express_v serious_a repentance_n for_o his_o sin_n the_o next_o day_n he_o be_v much_o in_o prayer_n cry_v come_v lord_n jesus_n sweet_a jesus_n into_o thy_o hand_n i_o commend_v my_o spirit_n be_v ask_v by_o those_o about_o he_o if_o his_o pain_n be_v great_a he_o answer_v that_o he_o do_v not_o esteem_v that_o a_o pain_n which_o shall_v be_v unto_o he_o the_o end_n of_o all_o trouble_n and_o beginning_n of_o eternal_a joy_n oftentimes_o after_o some_o deep_a meditation_n he_o burst_v forth_o in_o these_o word_n o_o serve_v the_o lord_n in_o fear_n and_o death_n shall_v not_o be_v troublesome_a unto_o you_o 7._o bless_a be_v the_o death_n of_o those_o that_o have_v part_n in_o the_o death_n of_o christ._n in_o the_o evening_n have_v sleep_v some_o hour_n together_o but_o with_o great_a unquietness_n for_o he_o be_v hear_v to_o send_v forth_o many_o sigh_n and_o groan_n be_v ask_v after_o he_o awake_v how_o he_o do_v find_v himself_o and_o what_o it_o be_v that_o make_v he_o to_o mourn_v so_o hearty_o in_o his_o sleep_n he_o answer_v in_o my_o life_n time_n i_o have_v oft_o be_v assault_v with_o satan_n &_o many_o time_n he_o have_v cast_v in_o my_o tooth_n my_o sin_n to_o bring_v i_o to_o despair_v yet_o god_n give_v i_o strength_n to_o overcome_v all_o his_o temptation_n and_o now_o that_o subtle_a serpent_n who_o never_o cease_v to_o tempt_v have_v take_v another_o course_n and_o seek_v to_o persuade_v i_o that_o all_o my_o labour_n in_o the_o ministry_n and_o the_o fidelity_n that_o i_o have_v show_v in_o that_o service_n have_v merit_v heaven_n and_o immortality_n but_o bless_v be_v god_n that_o bring_v to_o my_o mind_n these_o scripture_n what_o have_v thou_o that_o thou_o have_v not_o receive_v and_o not_o
i_o but_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o i_o with_o which_o he_o be_v go_v away_o ashamed_a and_o shall_v no_o more_o return_n and_o now_o i_o be_o sure_a my_o battle_n be_v at_o a_o end_n and_o that_o without_o pain_n of_o body_n or_o trouble_v of_o spirit_n i_o shall_v short_o change_v this_o mortal_a and_o miserable_a life_n with_o that_o happy_a and_o immortal_a which_o never_o shall_v have_v end_n after_o one_o have_v pray_v for_o he_o he_o be_v ask_v whether_o he_o hear_v the_o prayer_n he_o answer_v will_v to_o god_n that_o you_o have_v hear_v it_o with_o such_o a_o ear_n and_o heart_n as_o i_o have_v do_v add_v lord_n jesus_n receive_v my_o spirit_n with_o which_o word_n without_o any_o motion_n of_o hand_n or_o foot_n as_o one_o fall_v asleep_o rather_o than_o die_v he_o end_v his_o life_n when_o he_o be_v bury_v the_o earl_n of_o morton_n be_v near_o the_o grave_a say_v by_o way_n of_o epitaph_n here_o lie_v the_o body_n of_o he_o who_o in_o his_o life_n time_n never_o fear_v the_o face_n of_o man_n l._n lalaeus_fw-la 162._o simon_n lalaeus_fw-la to_o silvester_n his_o executioner_n say_v never_o see_v i_o a_o man_n in_o all_o my_o life_n who_o come_v be_v more_o welcome_a to_o i_o than_o thou_o 142._o silvester_n see_v the_o great_a faith_n and_o constancy_n of_o this_o bless_a martyr_n be_v convert_v and_o with_o all_o his_o family_n remove_v to_o the_o church_n at_o geneva_n lambert_n 396._o the_o first_o article_n against_o he_o be_v whether_o he_o be_v suspect_v or_o infamed_a of_o heresy_n unto_o your_o first_o demand_n say_v he_o i_o answer_v 398._o that_o i_o be_o not_o certain_a what_o all_o person_n at_o all_o season_n have_v deem_v or_o suspect_v of_o i_o peradventure_o some_o better_a some_o worse_a the_o opinion_n of_o the_o people_n be_v never_o one_o but_o think_v diverse_o of_o all_o the_o famous_a prophet_n and_o of_o the_o apostle_n yea_o and_o of_o christ_n himself_n some_o say_v that_o he_o be_v a_o very_a good_a man_n other_o say_z nay_o and_o call_v he_o a_o seducer_n etc._n etc._n see_v therefore_o that_o all_o man_n do_v not_o say_v well_o by_o christ_n the_o author_n of_o verity_n and_o truth_n yea_o truth_n itself_o etc._n etc._n what_o shall_v i_o need_v to_o regard_v if_o at_o some_o time_n some_o person_n for_o a_o little_a cause_n shall_v suspect_v of_o i_o amiss_o and_o evil_a report_n of_o i_o etc._n etc._n woe_n be_v unto_o you_o when_o all_o man_n speak_v well_o of_o you_o for_o so_o do_v their_o father_n to_o the_o false_a prophet_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o their_o second_o demand_n our_o prelate_n have_v send_v out_o commandment_n that_o if_o any_o person_n shall_v adventure_v to_o keep_v any_o of_o luther_n book_n they_o shall_v be_v excommunicate_v etc._n etc._n but_o this_o be_v no_o novelty_n for_o so_o do_v their_o forefather_n the_o prelate_n in_o christ_n time_n etc._n etc._n when_o christ_n go_v about_o preach_v the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n who_o be_v prelate_n then_o give_v a_o general_a command_n that_o whosoever_o confess_v he_o to_o be_v christ_n shall_v be_v put_v out_o of_o the_o synagogue_n etc._n etc._n the_o apostle_n be_v in_o like_a manner_n serve_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n they_o procure_v of_o one_o that_o be_v a_o temporal_a ruler_n at_o that_o season_n to_o have_v the_o prophecy_n of_o jeremy_n for_o he_o of_o all_o other_o be_v most_o vehement_a against_o the_o dissimulation_n of_o priest_n to_o be_v burn_v 399._o if_o they_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n which_o they_o claim_v and_o pretend_v to_o they_o will_v follow_v the_o counsel_n of_o the_o apostle_n 5._o to_o prove_v all_o thing_n and_o to_o retain_v that_o only_a which_o be_v good_a refrain_v from_o all_o that_o have_v semblance_n of_o evil_n and_o to_o try_v the_o spirit_n of_o they_o that_o shall_v speak_v 4._o whether_o they_o be_v of_o god_n or_o no._n the_o priest_n say_v chrysostome_n on_o matthew_n that_o be_v pharisees_n in_o christ_n time_n make_v a●●_n ordinance_n that_o whosoever_o shall_v acknowledge_v i●s●●_n to_o be_v christ_n shall_v be_v excommunicate_a if_o the_o pharisee_n or_o priest_n that_o now_o do_v occupy_v their_o room_n shall_v make_v a_o like_a ordinance_n because_o they_o will_v not_o have_v christ_n doctrine_n profess_v for_o hinder_v their_o lucre_n shall_v we_o leave_v off_o to_o seek_v after_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n doctrine_n no_o very_o when_o it_o be_v object_v against_o hierom_n that_o he_o retain_v by_o he_o the_o work_v of_o eusebius_n and_o origen_n he_o bring_v to_o prove_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o he_o that_o passage_n of_o the_o apostle_n prove_v all_o thing_n etc._n etc._n these_o thing_n prove_v that_o i_o and_o other_o may_v safe_o no_o good_a law_n inhibit_v but_o constitution_n pharisaical_a read_v the_o work_n of_o luther_n etc._n etc._n 401._o in_o his_o answer_n to_o their_o five_o demand_n it_o be_v evident_a from_o christ_n word_n when_o you_o have_v do_v all_o thing_n command_v say_v yet_o you_o be_v unprofitable_a servant_n etc._n etc._n that_o he_o will_v not_o have_v we_o esteem_v our_o merit_n when_o we_o have_v do_v what_o be_v command_v by_o god_n but_o reckon_v ourselves_o to_o be_v servant_n unprofitable_a to_o god_n forasmuch_o as_o he_o have_v no_o need_n of_o our_o well_o do_v for_o his_o own_o advancement_n etc._n etc._n and_o if_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o attend_v our_o merit_n in_o do_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n much_o less_o in_o observe_v our_o own_o invention_n or_o tradition_n of_o man_n unto_o which_o there_o be_v no_o benefit_n in_o all_o scripture_n which_o paul_n call_v the_o word_n of_o truth_n and_o faith_n promise_v 402._o in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o six_o demand_n that_o they_o will_v not_o suffer_v marriage_n to_o be_v solemnize_v at_o all_o time_n of_o the_o year_n i_o think_v it_o stand_v not_o with_o christ_n rule_n but_o rather_o be_v against_o the_o same_o it_o ought_v also_o free_o to_o be_v administer_v and_o without_o money_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n as_o ancient_a doctor_n deem_v and_o the_o scripture_n in_o my_o opinion_n record_v the_o same_o there_o be_v no_o more_o officer_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n than_o bishop_n and_o deacon_n hierome_n in_o his_o com._n on_o the_o epistle_n of_o paul_n say_v that_o those_o who_o we_o call_v priest_n be_v none_o other_o than_o bishop_n and_o the_o bishop_n none_o other_o then_o priest_n etc._n etc._n neither_o be_v they_o choose_v as_o they_o be_v now_o adays_o etc._n etc._n but_o they_o be_v choose_v not_o only_o of_o the_o bishop_n but_o with_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o people_n among_o who_o they_o shall_v have_v their_o live_n as_o show_v cyprian_a and_o the_o people_n ought_v to_o have_v power_n as_o he_o say_v to_o choose_v priest_n etc._n etc._n but_o alas_o such_o election_n be_v now_o banish_v and_o new_a fashion_n bring_v in_o in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o thirteen_o demand_n 405._o i_o say_v that_o there_o be_v a_o purgatory_n in_o this_o world_n the_o fire_n of_o tribulation_n through_o which_o all_o christian_n shall_v pass_v 2._o as_o testify_v paul_n who_o testimony_n be_v full_a notable_a and_o true_a albeit_o that_o few_o do_v know_v it_o and_o few_o will_v believe_v it_o that_o all_o that_o will_v live_v godly_a in_o christ_n jesus_n shall_v suffer_v persecution_n in_o this_o purgatory_n do_v i_o now_o reckon_v myself_o to_o stand_v god_n send_v i_o well_o to_o persevere_v unto_o his_o honour_n 3._o of_o this_o speak_v st._n peter_n for_o a_o season_n you_o be_v sundry_a way_n afflict_v and_o torment_v that_o the_o trial_n of_o your_o faith_n etc._n etc._n though_o it_o be_v try_v with_o fire_n may_v be_v find_v unto_o laud_n glory_n and_o honour_n at_o the_o appear_v of_o jesus_n christ_n etc._n etc._n other_o purgatory_n know_v i_o none_o in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o seventeen_o demand_n 409._o forsomuch_o as_o no_o positive_a law_n of_o man_n make_v without_o foundation_n of_o scripture_n may_v bind_v any_o person_n so_o that_o in_o break_v of_o such_o he_o shall_v therefore_o sin_v deadly_a and_o of_o this_o sort_n make_v by_o man_n be_v the_o fast_a of_o lent_n and_o other_o day_n ordain_v in_o your_o law_n without_o authority_n of_o scripture_n etc._n etc._n in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o one_o and_o twenty_o demand_n 410._o man_n may_v be_v wrongful_o suspect_v of_o heresy_n as_o the_o bishop_n and_o priest_n with_o their_o orator_n tertullus_n suspect_v paul_n 24._o etc._n etc._n and_o their_o predecessor_n speak_v of_o the_o prophet_n yea_o and_o of_o christ_n himself_o call_v he_o a_o seducer_n and_o preacher_n of_o heresy_n man_n be_v thus_o suspect_v aught_o in_o no_o wise_a therefore_o to_o cease_v preach_v as_o be_v evident_a in_o the_o instance_n of_o peter_n
the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o fear_v not_o they_o that_o kill_v the_o body_n but_o have_v no_o power_n upon_o your_o soul_n my_o flesh_n repugn_v marvellous_o against_o the_o spirit_n but_o short_o i_o shall_v cast_v it_o away_o i_o beseech_v you_o pray_v for_o i_o o_o lord_n my_o god_n into_o thy_o hand_n i_o commend_v my_o soul._n laurence_n i_o find_v three_o of_o this_o name_n record_v in_o the_o book_n of_o martyr_n first_o 92._o laurence_n the_o deacon_n when_o xistus_fw-la his_o pastor_n be_v martyr_v under_o the_o emperor_n valerianus_n be_v grieve_v that_o the_o son_n shall_v be_v seclude_v from_o the_o father_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o suffer_v with_o he_o see_v he_o lead_v alone_o as_o a_o sheep_n to_o the_o slaughter_n he_o cry_v out_o to_o he_o o_o dear_a father_n whither_o go_v thou_o without_o the_o company_n of_o thy_o dear_a son_n whither_o hastene_v thou_o o_o reverend_a pastor_n without_o thy_o deacon_n never_o be_v thou_o wont_n to_o offer_v sacrifice_n without_o thy_o minister_n what_o crime_n be_v there_o in_o i_o that_o offend_v thy_o fatherhood_n deny_v thou_o unto_o he_o the_o fellowship_n of_o thy_o blood_n to_o who_o thou_o have_v commit_v the_o distribution_n of_o the_o lord_n blood_n he_o have_v after_o three_o day_n respite_n promise_v the_o merciless_a tyrant_n to_o declare_v where_o the_o church_n treasure_n lay_v 93._o cause_v a_o good_a company_n of_o poor_a christian_n to_o be_v congregat_v and_o when_o the_o day_n of_o his_o answer_n be_v come_v and_o he_o be_v strict_o charge_v to_o stand_v to_o his_o promise_n he_o stretch_v out_o his_o arm_n over_o the_o poor_a say_v these_o be_v the_o precious_a treasure_n of_o the_o church_n these_o be_v the_o treasure_n indeed_o in_o who_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n reign_v in_o who_o jesus_n christ_n have_v his_o mansion-place_n what_o more_o precious_a jewel_n can_v christ_n have_v than_o those_o in_o who_o he_o have_v promise_v to_o dwell_v it_o be_v write_v i_o be_v hungry_a and_o you_o give_v i_o to_o eat_v i_o be_v thirsty_a and_o you_o give_v i_o to_o drink_v i_o be_v harbourless_o and_o you_o lodge_v i_o look_v what_o you_o have_v do_v to_o the_o least_o of_o these_o the_o same_o have_v you_o do_v to_o i_o no_o tongue_n be_v able_a to_o express_v the_o tyrant_n fury_n and_o madness_n hereupon_o kindle_v the_o fire_n of_o wood_n say_v he_o make_v no_o spare_a have_v this_o villain_n delude_v the_o emperor_n away_o with_o he_o away_o with_o he_o whip_v he_o buffet_v he_o brain_n he_o jest_v the_o traitor_n with_o the_o emperor_n roast_a he_o boil_v he_o toss_v he_o turn_v he_o on_o pain_n of_o our_o high_a displeasure_n do_v every_o one_o his_o office_n o_o you_o tormentor_n when_o he_o be_v on_o the_o fiery_a gridiron_n which_o be_v as_o a_o soft_a bed_n of_o down_o to_o he_o he_o speak_v thus_o unto_o the_o tyrant_n this_o side_n be_v now_o roast_v enough_o turn_v up_o o_o tyrant_n great_a essay_n whether_o roast_v or_o raw_a thou_o think_v the_o better_a meat_n 200._o second_o john_n laurence_n who_o be_v burn_v at_o colchester_n march_v 29._o an._n 1555._o he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o go_v be_v lame_v with_o iron_n in_o prison_n be_v bear_v to_o the_o fire_n in_o a_o chair_n and_o whilst_o he_o sit_v in_o the_o fire_n the_o young_a child_n come_v about_o the_o fire_n and_o cry_v as_o well_o as_o they_o can_v lord_n strengthen_v thy_o servant_n and_o keep_v thy_o promise_n lord_n strengthen_v thy_o servant_n and_o keep_v thy_o promise_n three_o henry_n laurence_n who_o be_v burn_v at_o canterbury_n about_o the_o late_a end_n of_o august_n the_o same_o year_n 393._o he_o be_v require_v to_o put_v his_o hand_n to_o his_o answer_n write_v you_o be_v all_o of_o antichrist_n and_o he_o you_o fol_n probable_o he_o will_v have_v write_v and_o he_o you_o follow_v have_v not_o he_o be_v hinder_v lawson_n 916._o elizabeth_n lawson_n continue_v almost_o three_o year_n in_o prison_n in_o which_o time_n her_o own_o son_n and_o many_o other_o be_v burn_v say_v often_o good_a lord_n what_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o i_o may_v not_o yet_o come_v to_o thou_o with_o thy_o child_n well_o good_a lord_n thy_o bless_a will_n be_v do_v and_o not_o i_o this_o good_a old_a woman_n about_o the_o age_n of_o sixty_o before_o she_o go_v to_o prison_n have_v the_o falling-sickness_n but_o she_o tell_v a_o friend_n of_o she_o that_o after_o she_o be_v apprehend_v she_o never_o have_v it_o more_o leafe_n bonner_n press_v john_n leaf_n 306._o a_o apprentice_n of_o london_n to_o recant_v he_o say_v no_o but_o i_o will_v die_v in_o that_o doctrine_n that_o mr._n rogers_n hooper_n card-maker_n etc._n etc._n die_v for_o my_o lord_n you_o call_v my_o opinion_n heresy_n it_o be_v the_o true_a light_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o i_o profess_v i_o will_v never_o forsake_v my_o wellgrounded_n opinion_n whilst_o i_o have_v breath_n in_o my_o body_n when_o two_o bill_n be_v send_v to_o he_o in_o the_o counter_a in_o breadstreet_n the_o one_o contain_v a_o recantation_n the_o other_o his_o confession_n to_o see_v which_o of_o they_o he_o will_v sign_n when_o that_o which_o contain_v his_o confession_n be_v read_v for_o he_o can_v neither_o read_v nor_o write_v in_o stead_n of_o a_o pen_n he_o take_v a_o pin_n and_o so_o prick_v his_o hand_n sprinkle_v the_o blood_n upon_o the_o say_a bill_n will_v the_o reader_n thereof_o to_o show_v the_o bishop_n that_o he_o have_v seal_v the_o same_o bill_n with_o his_o blood_n already_o lewes_n mrs._n joyce_n lewes_n be_v convert_v by_o mr._n john_n glover_n 838._o who_o after_o she_o be_v in_o some_o trouble_n will_v she_o in_o any_o case_n not_o to_o meddle_v with_o that_o matter_n in_o respect_n of_o vainglory_n or_o to_o get_v herself_o a_o name_n show_v to_o her_o the_o great_a danger_n she_o be_v like_a to_o cast_v herself_o into_o if_o she_o shall_v meddle_v in_o god_n matter_n otherwise_o then_o christ_n do_v teach_v when_o the_o bishop_n reason_v with_o she_o she_o tell_v he_o i_o find_v not_o these_o thing_n in_o god_n word_n which_o you_o urge_v and_o magnify_v as_o thing_n most_o needful_a for_o man_n salvation_n if_o these_o thing_n be_v in_o the_o same_o word_n of_o god_n command_v i_o will_v with_o all_o my_o heart_n receive_v esteem_v and_o believe_v they_o the_o bishop_n answer_v if_o thou_o will_v believe_v no_o more_o than_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n concern_v matter_n of_o religion_n thou_o be_v in_o a_o damnable_a case_n she_o be_v amaze_v and_o be_v move_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n tell_v he_o that_o his_o word_n be_v ungodly_a and_o wicked_a 839._o when_o news_n be_v bring_v of_o the_o come_n down_o of_o the_o writ_n de_fw-fr comburendo_fw-la etc._n etc._n she_o send_v for_o several_a christian_n to_o consult_v with_o they_o how_o she_o may_v behave_v herself_o that_o her_o death_n may_v be_v more_o glorious_a to_o the_o name_n of_o god_n comfortable_a to_o his_o people_n and_o most_o uncomfortable_a to_o the_o enemy_n of_o god_n as_o for_o death_n say_v she_o i_o do_v not_o great_o pass_v when_o i_o behold_v the_o amiable_a countenance_n of_o christ_n my_o dear_a saviour_n the_o ugly_a face_n of_o death_n do_v not_o great_o trouble_v i_o two_o priest_n send_v her_o word_n that_o they_o be_v come_v to_o hear_v her_o confession_n she_o send_v they_o word_n again_o that_o she_o have_v make_v her_o confession_n to_o christ_n her_o saviour_n at_o who_o hand_n she_o be_v sure_a to_o have_v forgiveness_n of_o her_o sin_n as_o concern_v the_o cause_n for_o the_o which_o she_o shall_v die_v she_o have_v no_o cause_n to_o confess_v that_o but_o rather_o to_o give_v unto_o god_n most_o humble_a praise_n that_o he_o do_v make_v her_o worthy_a to_o suffer_v death_n for_o his_o word_n and_o as_o concern_v that_o absolution_n that_o they_o be_v able_a to_o give_v unto_o she_o by_o authority_n from_o the_o pope_n she_o do_v defy_v the_o same_o even_o from_o the_o bottom_n of_o her_o heart_n about_o three_o of_o the_o clock_n in_o the_o morning_n before_o her_o execution_n satan_n question_v with_o she_o how_o she_o can_v tell_v that_o she_o be_v choose_v to_o eternal_a life_n and_o that_o christ_n die_v for_o she_o i_o grant_v that_o he_o die_v but_o that_o he_o die_v for_o thou_o how_o can_v thou_o tell_v but_o satan_n be_v soon_o put_v to_o flight_n and_o she_o comfort_v in_o christ_n by_o argue_v her_o election_n and_o christ_n die_v for_o she_o in_o particular_a from_o her_o vocation_n and_o the_o holy_a spirit_n work_v in_o her_o heart_n love_n and_o desire_v towards_o god_n to_o please_v he_o and_o to_o be_v justify_v by_o he_o through_o christ_n etc._n etc._n when_o the_o sheriff_n about_o eight_o of_o the_o clock_n
that_o my_o lord_n christ_n be_v strong_a than_o our_o enemy_n that_o he_o will_v defend_v i_o from_o their_o rage_n if_o he_o will_v not_o his_o good_a will_v be_v do_v this_o i_o can_v confident_o promise_v that_o no_o peril_n shall_v come_v to_o your_o excellency_n for_o my_o sake_n an._n 1522._o in_o his_o letter_n to_o sebastian_n schlick_n a_o bohemian_a nobleman_n 517._o the_o loathsome_a death_n of_o the_o papacy_n be_v at_o hand_n and_o its_o unavoidable_a ruin_n approach_v and_o as_o daniel_n say_v she_o come_v to_o a_o end_n and_o none_o shall_v help_v she_o in_o a_o short_a time_n i_o shall_v by_o my_o write_n christ_n favour_v of_o i_o free_v the_o bohemian_n from_o their_o reproach_n and_o cause_n that_o the_o name_n of_o popery_n shall_v be_v odious_a and_o abominable_a throughout_o the_o world_n and_o that_o to_o be_v a_o papist_n and_o to_o be_v anathematise_v shall_v be_v all_o one_o july_n 15._o 1522._o in_o his_o answer_n to_o king_n henry_n the_o eighth_n book_n against_o he_o 518._o let_v not_o king_n henry_n impute_v my_o sharpness_n against_o he_o to_o i_o but_o to_o himself_o if_o see_v that_o mere_a corruption_n and_o a_o wretched_a worm_n dare_v know_o belie_v the_o majesty_n of_o my_o heavenly_a king_n it_o can_v but_o be_v lawful_a for_o i_o for_o my_o king_n sake_n to_o bespatter_v the_o king_n of_o england_n with_o his_o own_o dirt_n and_o to_o trample_v under_o foot_n his_o crown_n fill_v with_o blasphemy_n against_o christ._n 520._o the_o lord_n clear_v up_o his_o will_n by_o degree_n unto_o i_o till_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o mighty_a jacob_n it_o come_v to_o this_o that_o by_o evident_a and_o pure_a scripture_n i_o be_v convince_v that_o the_o pope_n cardinal_n bishop_n priest_n monk_n mass_n and_o that_o whole_a kingdom_n with_o their_o doctrine_n and_o ministry_n be_v mere_a lie_n idol_n and_o the_o very_a abomination_n stand_v in_o the_o holy_a place_n yea_o and_o the_o scarlet_a whore_n sit_v upon_o the_o beast_n drink_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n witness_n and_o make_v the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n drink_v with_o the_o cup_n of_o her_o fornication_n and_o abomination_n this_o truth_n be_v discern_v i_o be_v force_v to_o retract_v some_o of_o my_o write_n and_o still_o do_v so_o be_v sorry_a at_o the_o very_a heart_n i_o ever_o write_v one_o syllable_n in_o favour_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o kingdom_n yea_o i_o speak_v too_o modest_o in_o my_o treatise_n concern_v the_o babylonish_n captivity_n of_o the_o church_n in_o call_v papacy_n the_o pope_n mighty_a hunt_n for_o that_o from_o the_o example_n of_o nimrod_n may_v be_v say_v of_o all_o profane_a civil_a power_n to_o who_o notwithstanding_o god_n will_v have_v we_o to_o be_v subject_a to_o honour_v they_o and_o pray_v for_o they_o i_o now_o say_v most_o true_o that_o papacy_n be_v the_o most_o pestilent_a abomination_n of_o prince_n satan_n 531._o against_o the_o say_n of_o father_n man_n angel_n devil_n i_o set_v not_o ancient_a custom_n not_o multitude_n but_o the_o word_n of_o one_o eternal_a god_n here_o i_o stand_v sit_z abaid_z glory_n triumph_v over_o the_o papist_n thomist_n henry_n be_v sophister_n and_o all_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v above_o all_o god_n be_v on_o my_o side_n what_o shall_v i_o care_v if_o a_o thousand_o austin_n a_o thousand_o cyprian_n a_o thousand_o church_n of_o henry_n be_v against_o i_o god_n can_v err_v nor_o deceive_v but_o austin_n and_o cyprian_n as_o all_o the_o elect_n may_v err_v 240._o yea_o have_v err_v let_v the_o henry_n the_o bishop_n the_o turk_n and_o the_o devil_n himself_o do_v what_o they_o can_v we_o be_v the_o child_n of_o the_o kingdom_n worship_v and_o wait_v for_o that_o saviour_n who_o they_o and_o such_o as_o they_o spit_v upon_o and_o crucify_v if_o any_o be_v offend_v at_o my_o sharpness_n against_o the_o king_n 534._o let_v he_o take_v this_o answer_n it_o be_v no_o great_a matter_n if_o i_o contemn_v and_o bite_v a_o earthly_a king_n whenas_o he_o fear_v not_o at_o all_o in_o his_o write_n to_o blaspheme_v the_o king_n of_o heaven_n 80._o in_o the_o year_n 152●_n a_o diet_n be_v hold_v at_o norinberg_n in_o the_o absence_n of_o the_o emperor_n wherein_o the_o edict_n of_o worm_n be_v make_v null_a of_o this_o the_o pope_n legate_n complain_v to_o the_o prince_n say_v that_o luther_n be_v not_o punish_v according_a to_o the_o emperor_n edict_n the_o prince_n answer_n be_v that_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n neglect_v reformation_n that_o germany_n be_v so_o far_o enlighten_v with_o the_o sermon_n and_o write_n of_o luther_n that_o if_o they_o shall_v go_v about_o to_o put_v the_o edict_n in_o execution_n great_a tumult_n will_v arise_v and_o the_o people_n will_v be_v ready_a to_o think_v that_o they_o go_v about_o to_o oppress_v the_o truth_n and_o to_o put_v out_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o so_o they_o may_v the_o better_o defend_v those_o manifest_a vice_n which_o can_v be_v no_o long_o conceal_v in_o the_o year_n 1525._o 239._o luther_n marry_v katherine_n a_o boren_n who_o have_v former_o be_v a_o nun_n the_o change_n of_o his_o condition_n trouble_v he_o because_o of_o the_o unseasonableness_n of_o the_o time_n it_o be_v then_o when_o germany_n welter_v in_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o clown_n and_o saxony_n mourn_v for_o the_o death_n of_o their_o prince_n insomuch_o that_o melancthon_n be_v fain_o to_o labour_v to_o comfort_v he_o all_o he_o can_v in_o his_o letter_n to_o melancthon_n who_o be_v much_o trouble_v at_o the_o rage_n of_o the_o papist_n and_o caesar_n threat_n to_o subvert_v the_o gospel_n in_o private_a conflict_n i_o be_o weak_a and_o you_o be_v strong_a but_o in_o public_a conflict_n you_o be_v find_v weak_a and_o i_o strong_a because_o i_o be_o assure_v that_o our_o cause_n be_v just_a and_o true_a if_o we_o fall_v christ_n the_o lord_n and_o ruler_n of_o the_o world_n fall_v with_o we_o and_o suppose_v he_o fall_v i_o have_v rather_o fall_v with_o christ_n then_o stand_v with_o caesar._n i_o extreme_o dislike_v your_o excessive_a care_n with_o which_o you_o say_v you_o be_v almost_o consume_v that_o these_o reign_n in_o your_o heart_n it_o be_v not_o from_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o danger_n but_o the_o greatness_n of_o your_o incredulity_n 240._o if_o the_o cause_n be_v bad_a let_v we_o revoke_v it_o and_o fall_v back_o if_o it_o be_v good_a why_o do_v we_o make_v god_n a_o liar_n be_v of_o good_a comfort_n i_o have_v overcome_v the_o world_n if_o christ_n be_v the_o conqueror_n of_o the_o world_n why_o shall_v we_o fear_v as_o if_o it_o will_v overcome_v we_o a_o man_n will_v fetch_v such_o sentence_n as_o these_o upon_o his_o knee_n from_o rome_n or_o jerusalem_n be_v not_o afraid_a ●e_v courageous_a and_o cheerful_a solicitous_a for_o nothing_o the_o lord_n be_v at_o hand_n to_o help_v we_o when_o the_o diet_n be_v meet_v at_o ausburg_n in_o the_o year_n 1530._o the_o elector_n of_o saxony_n send_v to_o luther_n to_o know_v whether_o the_o cause_n of_o religion_n shall_v be_v refer_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o emperor_n he_o answer_v this_o honour_n be_v to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n only_o to_o be_v judge_n of_o sacred_a controversy_n 245._o in_o his_o preface_n before_o the_o smalcaldian_a article_n in_o many_o bishopric_n divers_a parish_n be_v destitute_a of_o spiritual_a food_n etc._n etc._n i_o fear_v for_o this_o christ_n will_v call_v a_o council_n of_o angel_n to_o destroy_v germany_n as_o he_o destroy_v sodom_n and_o gomorrah_n our_o sin_n weigh_v we_o down_o and_o suffer_v not_o god_n to_o be_v gracious_a to_o we_o because_o instead_o of_o repent_v we_o defend_v our_o abomination_n o_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n do_v thou_o summon_v and_o hold_v a_o council_n and_o redeem_v thy_o servant_n by_o the_o glorious_a come_n the_o pope_n and_o popeling_n be_v past_a cure_n therefore_o help_v we_o poor_a and_o distress_a man_n who_o groan_n unto_o thou_o and_o seek_v thou_o with_o our_o heart_n etc._n etc._n 246._o when_o the_o papist_n charge_v he_o for_o a_o apostate_n he_o yield_v himself_o to_o be_v one_o but_o a_o bless_a and_o holy_a one_o who_o have_v not_o keep_v his_o promise_n make_v to_o the_o devil_n i_o be_o say_v he_o no_o otherwise_o a_o revolter_n then_o a_o magician_n renounce_v his_o covenant_n make_v with_o the_o devil_n and_o betake_v himself_o to_o christ._n when_o he_o fall_v sick_a of_o the_o stone_n he_o make_v his_o will_n in_o which_o he_o bequeath_v his_o detestation_n of_o popery_n to_o his_o friend_n and_o to_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n have_v make_v before_o this_o verse_n pestis_fw-la eram_fw-la vivus_fw-la moriens_fw-la ●ro_fw-la mortua_fw-la papa_n in_o english_a thus_o i_o live_v
stop_v rome_n breath_n and_o dead_a will_v be_v rome_n death_n in_o this_o last_o prayer_n feb._n 18._o 1546._o 249._o i_o pray_v god_n to_o preserve_v the_o doctrine_n of_o his_o gospel_n among_o we_o for_o the_o p●pe_n and_o the_o council_n of_o tren●_n have_v grievous_a thing_n in_o hand_n o_o heavenly_a father_n my_o gracious_a god_n and_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n thou_o god_n of_o all_o consolation_n i_o give_v thou_o hearty_a thanks_o that_o thou_o have_v reveal_v to_o meet_v thy_o son_n jesus_n christ_n 152._o who_o i_o believe_v who_o i_o profess_v who_o i_o glorify_v who_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o reut_n of_o the_o wicked_a persecute_v and_o dishonour_v i_o beseech_v thou_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n receive_v my_o soul._n o_o my_o heavenly_a father_n though_o i_o be_v take_v out_o of_o this_o life_n and_o must_v lay_v down_o this_o frail_a body_n yet_o i_o certain_o know_v that_o i_o shall_v live_v with_o thou_o eternal_o and_o that_o i_o can_v be_v take_v out_o of_o thy_o hand_n lord_n into_o thy_o hand_n i_o commend_v my_o spirit_n thou_o o_o god_n of_o truth_n have_v redeem_v i_o in_o this_o last_o will._n o_o lord_n god_n i_o thank_v thou_o that_o thou_o will_v have_v i_o live_v a_o poor_a and_o indigent_a person_n upon_o earth_n 250._o i_o have_v neither_o house_n nor_o land_n nor_o possession_n nor_o money_n to_o leave_v thou_o lord_n have_v give_v i_o wife_n and_o child_n they_o lord_n i_o give_v back_o unto_o thou_o nourish_v instruct_v and_o keep_v they_o o_o thou_o the_o father_n of_o orphan_n and_o judge_n of_o the_o widow_n as_o thou_o have_v do_v to_o i_o so_o do_v to_o they_o when_o he_o see_v his_o daughter_n magdalen_n ready_a to_o die_v he_o read_v to_o her_o isa._n 26.19_o thy_o dead_a man_n shall_v live_v together_o with_o my_o dead_a body_n shall_v they_o arise_v etc._n etc._n add_v my_o daughter_n enter_v thou_o into_o thy_o chamber_n in_o peace_n i_o shall_v ere_o long_o ●e_v with_o thou_o for_o god_n will_v not_o permit_v i_o to_o see_v the_o punishment_n which_o hang_v over_o the_o head_n of_o germany_n 251._o when_o the_o elector_n give_v he_o a_o new_a gown_n he_o say_v i_o be_o make_v too_o much_o of_o for_o if_o here_o we_o receive_v a_o full_a recompense_n for_o our_o labour_n we_o shall_v hope_v for_o none_o in_o another_o life_n i_o say_v flat_o that_o god_n shall_v not_o put_v i_o off_o with_o these_o low_a thing_n in_o the_o cause_n of_o god_n say_v he_o i_o be_o content_a to_o undergo_v the_o hatred_n and_o violence_n of_o all_o the_o world_n 252._o when_o his_o head_n be_v out_o of_o order_n as_o it_o use_v to_o be_v towards_o his_o late_a end_n he_o will_v usual_o say_v strike_v lord_n strike_v merciful_o i_o be_o prepare_v because_o by_o thy_o word_n i_o be_o forgive_v my_o iniquity_n and_o have_v feed_v upon_o thy_o body_n and_o blood_n he_o use_v to_o say_v that_o three_o thing_n will_v destroy_v christian_a religion_n forgetfulness_n of_o the_o blessing_n receive_v by_o the_o gospel_n security_n which_o reign_v every_o where_o and_o worldly_a wisdom_n which_o will_v seek_v to_o bring_v all_o thing_n into_o order_n and_o to_o support_v the_o public_a peace_n by_o wicked_a counsel_n 256._o erasmus_n say_v of_o he_o god_n have_v give_v to_o this_o late_a age_n a_o sharp_a physician_n and_o that_o because_o of_o the_o greatness_n of_o its_o disease_n 88_o mr._n fox_n say_v of_o he_o that_o luther_n a_o poor_a friar_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o stand_v against_o the_o pope_n be_v a_o great_a miracle_n that_o he_o shall_v prevail_v against_o the_o pope_n be_v a_o great_a and_o after_o all_o to_o die_v in_o peace_n have_v so_o many_o enemy_n be_v the_o great_a of_o all_o 313._o when_o myconius_n fall_v into_o a_o consumption_n 1541._o and_o write_v to_o luther_n that_o he_o be_v sick_a unto_o life_n and_o not_o unto_o death_n luther_n write_v back_o i_o pray_v christ_n our_o lord_n our_o salvation_n and_o health_n etc._n etc._n that_o i_o may_v not_o live_v to_o see_v thou_o and_o some_o other_o of_o our_o colleague_n to_o die_v and_o go_v to_o heaven_n and_o leave_v i_o here_o among_o the_o devil_n alone_o i_o pray_v god_n i_o may_v first_o lay_v down_o this_o dry_a exhaust_v and_o unprofitable_a tabernacle_n farewell_n and_o god_n forbid_v that_o i_o shall_v hear_v of_o thy_o death_n while_o i_o live_v the_o lord_n prolong_v thy_o life_n for_o i_o this_o i_o desire_v this_o i_o will_v and_o let_v my_o will_v be_v do_v amen_o for_o this_o will_v have_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n not_o my_o pleasure_n nor_o advantage_n for_o its_o end_n by_o and_o by_o hopeless_a myconius_n recover_v and_o live_v six_o year_n long_o even_o till_o after_o luther_n death_n hence_o justus_n jonas_n speak_v of_o he_o sai_z that_o man_n can_v have_v of_o god_n what_o he_o please_v he_o will_v by_o no_o mean_n endure_v that_o any_o shall_v be_v call_v after_o his_o name_n 254._o for_o say_v he_o the_o doctrine_n which_o i_o teach_v be_v none_o of_o i_o neither_o do_v idie_n for_o any_o man_n neither_o will_v paul_n 1_o cor._n 3.4_o etc._n etc._n endure_v such_o term_n beside_o we_o be_v all_o christian_n and_o profess_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o last_o because_o the_o papist_n use_v to_o do_v so_o call_z themselves_z pontifician_n who_o we_o nought_o not_o to_o imitate_v m._n mallot_n often_o have_v we_o hazard_v our_o life_n say_v john_n mallot_v a_o soldier_n for_o the_o emperor_n charles_n the_o five_o 153._o and_o shall_v we_o now_o shrink_v to_o die_v for_o the_o king_n of_o king_n let_v we_o follow_v our_o captain_n man._n thomas_n man_n have_v break_v prison_n after_o his_o recantation_n 29._o say_v if_o i_o be_v take_v again_o of_o the_o pilled_a knave_n priest_n i_o wist_v well_o i_o shall_v go_v the_o holy_a angel_n and_o then_o be_v a_o angel_n in_o heaven_n according_o the_o sheriff_n of_o london_n when_o he_o have_v bring_v he_o into_o smithfield_n to_o be_v burn_v put_v he_o into_o god_n angel_n he_o thank_v god_n that_o he_o have_v be_v instrumental_a to_o convert_v seven_o hundred_o person_n marbeck_n 91._o john_n marbeck_n be_v a_o skilful_a organist_n in_o the_o choir_n of_o windsor_n a_o man_n of_o admirable_a industry_n and_o ingenuity_n his_o english_a concordance_n the_o first_o that_o ever_o be_v in_o english_a bishop_n gardiner_n himself_o can_v not_o but_o commend_v as_o a_o piece_n of_o singular_a industry_n king_n henry_n the_o eight_o hear_v thereof_o say_v that_o he_o be_v better_o employ_v than_o those_o priest_n that_o accuse_v he_o 547._o be_v press_v to_o discover_v heretic_n and_o be_v tell_v he_o can_v not_o do_v god_n and_o the_o king_n great_a service_n if_o i_o know_v say_v he_o who_o be_v heretic_n indeed_o it_o be_v somewhat_o but_o if_o i_o shall_v accuse_v he_o to_o be_v a_o heretic_n that_o be_v none_o what_o a_o worm_n will_v that_o be_v in_o my_o conscience_n so_o long_o as_o i_o live_v yea_o it_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n better_o for_o i_o to_o be_v out_o of_o this_o life_n then_o to_o live_v in_o such_o torment_n he_o be_v call_v a_o dolt_n who_o will_v not_o discover_v they_o who_o shall_v be_v send_v for_o and_o will_v utter_v then_o all_o they_o can_v of_o he_o whatsoever_o say_v he_o they_o shall_v say_v of_o i_o let_v they_o do_v it_o in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n i_o will_v say_v no_o more_o of_o they_o nor_o of_o any_o man_n else_o than_o i_o know_v 548._o be_v further_o press_v to_o write_v down_o what_o he_o know_v of_o such_o he_o thus_o pray_v unto_o god_n o_o most_o merciful_a father_n of_o heaven_n thou_o that_o know_v the_o secret_a do_n of_o all_o man_n have_v mercy_n upon_o thy_o poor_a prisoner_n that_o be_v destitute_a of_o all_o help_n and_o comfort_n assist_v i_o o_o lord_n with_o thy_o special_a grace_n that_o to_o save_v this_o frail_a and_o vile_a body_n which_o shall_v turn_v to_o corruption_n in_o its_o time_n i_o have_v no_o power_n to_o say_v or_o to_o write_v any_o thing_n that_o may_v be_v to_o the_o cast_v away_o of_o my_o christian_a brother_n but_o rather_o o_o lord_n let_v this_o vile_a flesh_n suffer_v at_o thy_o will_n and_o pleasure_n grant_v this_o o_o most_o merciful_a father_n for_o thy_o dear_a son_n jesus_n christ_n sake_n then_o he_o rise_v up_o and_o begin_v to_o search_v his_o conscience_n what_o he_o may_v write_v and_o at_o last_o write_v thus_o whereas_o your_o lordship_n will_v have_v i_o to_o write_v of_o such_o thing_n as_o i_o know_v not_o of_o my_o fellow_n at_o home_n may_v it_o please_v your_o lordship_n to_o understand_v that_o i_o can_v call_v to_o remembrance_n any_o manner_n of_o thing_n whereby_o i_o may_v just_o accuse_v any_o one_o of_o they_o
in_o all_o the_o will_n of_o god_n whilst_o i_o be_v at_o lancaster_n some_o of_o good_a will_n towards_o i_o but_o without_o knowledge_n that_o come_v to_o talk_v with_o i_o give_v i_o the_o same_o counsel_n that_o peter_n give_v christ_n as_o he_o go_v up_o to_o jerusalem_n master_n favour_n thyself_o etc._n etc._n but_o i_o answer_v with_o christ_n sharp_a answer_n to_o peter_n again_o get_v thou_o behind_o i_o satan_n and_o perceive_v that_o they_o be_v a_o hindrance_n to_o i_o and_o that_o they_o savour_v not_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v of_o god_n but_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v of_o man_n i_o make_v they_o plain_a answer_n that_o i_o neither_o can_v nor_o will_v follow_v their_o counsel_n but_o that_o by_o god_n grace_n i_o will_v both_o live_v and_o die_v with_o a_o pure_a conscience_n and_o according_a as_o hitherto_o i_o have_v believe_v and_o profess_v for_o we_o ought_v in_o no_o wise_a say_v he_o to_o flatter_v and_o bear_v with_o they_o though_o they_o love_v we_o never_o so_o well_o which_o go_v about_o to_o pluck_v we_o away_o from_o the_o obedience_n which_o we_o owe_v unto_o god_n and_o to_o his_o word_n but_o after_o christ_n example_n sharp_o to_o rebuke_v they_o for_o their_o counsel_n god_n so_o strengthen_v i_o with_o his_o spirit_n of_o boldness_n according_a to_o my_o humble_a request_n and_o prayer_n before_o everlasting_a thanks_o be_v give_v to_o he_o therefore_o that_o i_o be_v nothing_o afraid_a to_o speak_v to_o any_o that_o come_v to_o i_o no_o not_o even_o to_o judge_n before_o who_o i_o be_v thrice_o arraign_v at_o the_o bar_n among_o the_o thief_n with_o iron_n on_o my_o foot_n and_o put_v up_o my_o hand_n as_o other_o do_v but_o yet_o with_o boldness_n i_o speak_v unto_o they_o so_o long_o as_o they_o will_v suffer_v i_o they_o threaten_v and_o rebuke_v i_o for_o my_o preach_n to_o the_o people_n out_o of_o prison_n and_o for_o my_o pray_v and_o read_v so_o loud_o that_o the_o people_n in_o the_o street_n may_v hear_v when_o the_o bishop_n of_o chester_n come_v to_o lancaster_n he_o be_v inform_v of_o i_o and_o desire_v to_o send_v for_o i_o and_o examine_v i_o but_o he_o say_v he_o will_v have_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o heretic_n so_o hasty_o so_o hasty_a in_o judge_v and_o call_v i_o heretic_n be_v our_o bishop_n in_o their_o lordly_a dignity_n before_o they_o hear_v etc._n etc._n contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o say_v condemn_v no_o man_n before_o thou_o have_v try_v out_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o matter_n and_o when_o thou_o have_v make_v inquisition_n then_o reform_v righteous_o give_v no_o sentence_n before_o thou_o have_v hear_v the_o cause_n but_o first_o let_v man_n tell_v out_o their_o tale_n and_o he_o that_o give_v sentence_n in_o a_o matter_n before_o he_o hear_v it_o be_v a_o fool_n and_o worthy_a to_o be_v confound_v it_o be_v no_o new_a thing_n for_o the_o bishop_n to_o persecute_v the_o truth_n and_o the_o prophet_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o their_o constancy_n in_o preach_v of_o the_o true_a faith_n 229._o faith_n for_o so_o do_v their_o pharisaical_a forefather_n pashur_n be_v the_o head_n bishop_n of_o the_o temple_n the_o ringleader_n of_o false_a prophet_n the_o chief_a heretick-taker_n that_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v the_o outthruster_n of_o true_a godliness_n he_o imprison_v the_o prophet_n jeremy_n etc._n etc._n the_o ungracious_a bishop_n i●son_n be_v such_o another_o machab._n 2.4_o such_o be_v also_o the_o execrable_a and_o blind_a bishop_n annas_n and_o caiaphas_n who_o never_o speak_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n themselves_o unless_o it_o be_v against_o their_o will_n unwitting_o to_o their_o own_o destruction_n at_o chester_n several_a time_n come_v to_o i_o and_o with_o all_o probability_n of_o word_n and_o philosophy_n or_o worldly_a wisdom_n and_o deceitful_a vanity_n after_o the_o tradition_n of_o man_n and_o the_o beggarly_a ordinance_n and_o law_n of_o the_o world_n but_o not_o after_o christ_n go_v about_o to_o persuade_v i_o to_o submit_v myself_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o to_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v head_n thereof_o and_o to_o interpret_v the_o scripture_n no_o otherwise_o then_o that_o church_n do_v i_o answer_v that_o i_o do_v acknowledge_v and_o believe_v one_o holy_a catholic_n church_n without_o which_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n and_o that_o this_o church_n be_v but_o one_o because_o it_o ever_o have_v do_v and_o shall_v confess_v one_o only_a god_n and_o he_o only_a worship_n and_o one_o only_a messiah_n and_o he_o only_o trust_v for_o salvation_n which_o church_n be_v rule_v and_o lead_v by_o one_o spirit_n one_o word_n and_o one_o faith_n etc._n etc._n and_o be_v build_v only_o upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n jesus_n christ_n himself_o be_v the_o head-corner-stone_n and_o not_o upon_o the_o romish_a law_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o supreme_a head_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o this_o church_n be_v a_o little_a poor_a silly_a flock_n disperse_v and_o scatter_v abroad_o as_o sheep_n without_o a_o shepherd_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o wolf_n or_o as_o a_o company_n of_o orphan_n and_o fatherless_a child_n lead_v and_o rule_v by_o the_o only_a law_n counsel_n and_o word_n of_o christ_n who_o be_v the_o supreme_a head_n thereof_o assist_v succour_a and_o defend_v she_o from_o all_o assault_n error_n trouble_n and_o persecution_n wherewith_o she_o be_v ever_o compass_v about_o i_o be_v thrust_v at_o with_o all_o violence_n of_o craft_n and_o subtlety_n but_o yet_o the_o lord_n uphold_v i_o everlasting_a thanks_o be_v to_o that_o merciful_a and_o faithful_a lord_n who_o suffer_v we_o not_o to_o be_v tempt_v above_o our_o might_n but_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o our_o trouble_n strengthen_v we_o with_o his_o holy_a spirit_n of_o comfort_n and_o patience_n give_v we_o a_o mouth_n and_o wisdom_n how_o and_o what_o to_o speak_v where_o against_o all_o his_o adversary_n be_v not_o able_a to_o resist_v at_o another_o appearance_n before_o the_o bishop_n 230._o etc._n etc._n the_o chancellor_n charge_v he_o that_o he_o have_v preach_v most_o heretical_o and_o blasphemous_o in_o many_o parish_n within_o the_o bishop_n diocese_n against_o the_o pope_n authority_n the_o catholic_n church_n of_o rome_n etc._n etc._n he_o answer_v that_o he_o neither_o heretical_o nor_o blasphemous_o preach_v or_o speak_v against_o any_o of_o the_o say_a article_n but_o simple_o and_o true_o as_o occasion_v serve_v and_o as_o it_o be_v thereunto_o force_v in_o conscience_n maintain_v the_o truth_n touch_v those_o article_n as_o say_v he_o all_o you_o now_o present_a do_v acknowledge_v the_o same_o in_o king_n edward_n day_n after_o the_o bishop_n of_o chester_n have_v read_v half-way_n the_o sentence_n of_o condemnation_n 231._o he_o ask_v he_o whether_o he_o will_v not_o have_v the_o queen_n mercy_n in_o time_n he_o answer_v he_o do_v glad_o desire_v the_o same_o and_o do_v love_v her_o grace_n as_o faithful_o as_o any_o of_o they_o but_o yet_o he_o dare_v not_o deny_v his_o saviour_n christ_n and_o so_o lose_v his_o mercy_n everlasting_a and_o win_v everlasting_a death_n be_v again_o call_v upon_o by_o the_o people_n to_o recant_v and_o save_v his_o life_n he_o say_v i_o will_v as_o fain_o live_v as_o any_o of_o you_o if_o in_o so_o do_v i_o shall_v not_o deny_v my_o master_n christ_n and_o again_o he_o shall_v deny_v i_o before_o his_o father_n in_o heaven_n when_o the_o bishop_n have_v read_v out_o the_o sentence_n he_o say_v now_o i_o will_v no_o more_o pray_v for_o thou_o then_o i_o will_v pray_v for_o a_o dog_n mr._n marsh_n answer_v that_o notwithstanding_o he_o will_v pray_v for_o his_o lordship_n when_o he_o be_v in_o the_o dungeon_n and_o none_o suffer_v to_o come_v near_o he_o some_o of_o the_o citizen_n will_v at_o a_o hole_n upon_o the_o wall_n of_o the_o city_n that_o go_v into_o the_o dungeon_n ask_v he_o how_o he_o do_v he_o will_v answer_v they_o most_o cheerful_o that_o he_o do_v well_o and_o thank_v god_fw-we most_o high_o that_o he_o will_v vouchsafe_v of_o his_o mercy_n to_o appoint_v he_o to_o be_v a_o witness_n of_o his_o truth_n and_o to_o suffer_v for_o the_o same_o wherein_o he_o do_v most_o rejoice_v beseech_v he_o that_o he_o will_v give_v he_o grace_v not_o to_o faint_v under_o the_o cross_n but_o patient_o bear_v the_o same_o to_o his_o glory_n and_o comfort_n of_o his_o church_n when_o he_o come_v to_o the_o place_n of_o execution_n one_o show_v he_o a_o write_n under_o the_o great_a seal_n and_o tell_v he_o it_o be_v a_o pardon_n for_o he_o if_o he_o will_v recant_v he_o say_v that_o he_o will_v glad_o receive_v the_o same_o but_o forasmuch_o as_o it_o tend_v to_o pluck_v he_o from_o god_n he_o will_v not_o receive_v it_o upon_o
of_o canterbury_n rejoice_v in_o the_o lord_n and_o as_o you_o love_v i_o and_o the_o other_o my_o reverend_a father_n and_o concaptives_n which_o undoubted_o be_v gloria_fw-la christi_fw-la lament_v not_o our_o state_n but_o i_o beseech_v you_o to_o give_v to_o our_o heavenly_a father_n for_o his_o endless_a mercy_n and_o unspeakable_a benefit_n even_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o all_o our_o trouble_n give_v to_o we_o most_o hearty_a thanks_o for_o know_v you_o that_o as_o the_o weight_n of_o his_o cross_n have_v increase_v upon_o we_o so_o he_o have_v not_o nor_o do_v he_o cease_v to_o multiply_v his_o mercy_n to_o strengthen_v we_o and_o i_o trust_v yea_o by_o his_o grace_n i_o doubt_v nothing_o but_o he_o will_v so_o do_v for_o christ_n our_o master_n sake_n even_o to_o the_o end_n west_n your_o old_a companion_n and_o sometime_o my_o chaplain_n alas_o have_v relent_v but_o the_o lord_n have_v shorten_v his_o day_n soon_o after_o he_o have_v say_v mass_n against_o his_o conscience_n he_o pine_v away_o and_o die_v for_o sorrow_n 449._o my_o daily_a prayer_n be_v as_o god_n do_v know_v and_o by_o god_n grace_n shall_v be_v so_o long_o as_o i_o live_v in_o this_o world_n for_o you_o my_o dear_a brethren_n that_o be_v flee_v out_o of_o your_o own_o country_n because_o you_o will_v rather_o forsake_v all_o worldly_a thing_n than_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n word_n that_o god_n our_o eternal_a father_n for_o our_o saviour_n christ_n sake_n will_v daily_o increase_v in_o you_o the_o gracious_a gift_n of_o his_o heavenly_a spirit_n to_o the_o true_a set_n forth_o of_o his_o glory_n and_o gospel_n and_o make_v you_o to_o agree_v brotherly_a in_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o same_o that_o there_o arise_v no_o root_n of_o bitterness_n among_o you_o that_o may_v infect_v that_o good_a seed_n which_o god_n have_v sow_v in_o your_o heart_n already_o and_o that_o your_o life_n may_v be_v pure_a and_o honest_a according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o god_n word_n that_o other_o may_v be_v in_o love_n with_o your_o doctrine_n and_o with_o you_o and_o glorify_v our_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n now_o we_o expect_v nothing_o but_o the_o triumphant_a crown_n in_o the_o lord_n of_o our_o confession_n from_o our_o old_a enemy_n i_o commend_v myself_o humble_o and_o hearty_o to_o your_o prayer_n dr._n grindal_n and_o to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o brethren_n with_o you_o dear_o belove_v by_o i_o in_o the_o lord_n viz._n cheek_n cox_n turner_n lever_n samson_n chambers_z etc._n etc._n and_o other_o who_o love_v the_o lord_n in_o truth_n i_o commend_v also_o to_o you_o my_o reverend_a father_n and_o fellow-prisoner_n in_o the_o lord_n thomas_z cranmer_z now_o most_o worthy_a the_o name_n of_o a_o true_a and_o great_a shepherd_n yea_o arch_a bishop_n and_o hugh_n latimer_n that_o old_a soldier_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o true_a apostle_n of_o our_o english_a nation_n in_o his_o letter_n to_o augustine_n bornher_n brother_n augustine_n i_o bless_v god_n with_o all_o my_o heart_n in_o his_o manifold_a merciful_a gift_n give_v unto_o our_o dear_a brethren_n in_o christ_n special_o to_o our_o brother_n rogers_n etc._n etc._n and_o also_o to_o hooper_n saunders_n and_o tailor_n who_o it_o have_v please_v the_o lord_n to_o set_v in_o the_o forefront_n of_o the_o battle_n against_o his_o adversary_n and_o have_v endue_v they_o all_o so_o far_o as_o i_o can_v hear_v to_o stand_v in_o the_o confession_n of_o his_o truth_n and_o to_o be_v content_a in_o his_o cause_n and_o for_o his_o gospel_n sake_n to_o lose_v their_o life_n and_o evermore_o and_o without_o end_n bless_v be_v our_o heavenly_a father_n for_o our_o dear_a and_o entire_o belove_a brother_n bradford_n who_o now_o i_o perceive_v the_o lord_n call_v for_o for_o i_o ween_v he_o will_v no_o long_o suffer_v he_o to_o abide_v among_o the_o adulterous_a and_o wicked_a generation_n of_o this_o world_n i_o doubt_v not_o but_o he_o have_v holpen_v those_o which_o be_v go_v before_o in_o their_o journey_n that_o be_v have_v animate_v and_o encourage_v they_o to_o keep_v the_o high_a way_n and_o so_o to_o run_v that_o at_o length_n they_o may_v obtain_v the_o prize_n the_o lord_n be_v his_o comfort_n whereof_o i_o do_v not_o doubt_v i_o thank_v god_n hearty_o that_o ever_o i_o be_v acquaint_v with_o he_o and_o that_o ever_o i_o have_v such_o a_o one_o in_o my_o house_n 487._o i_o trust_v to_o god_n it_o shall_v please_v he_o of_o his_o goodness_n to_o strengthen_v i_o to_o make_v up_o the_o trinity_n out_o of_o paul_n church_n to_o suffer_v for_o christ_n etc._n etc._n upon_o the_o thirty_o of_o september_n 1555._o dr._n ridley_n with_o father_n latimer_n be_v bring_v before_o the_o queen_n commissioner_n to_o undergo_v his_o last_o examination_n whilst_o the_o commission_n be_v read_v he_o stand_v bare_a till_o he_o hear_v the_o cardinal_n name_v and_o the_o pope_n holiness_n than_o he_o put_v on_o his_o cap_n and_o be_v admonish_v by_o the_o bishoy_n of_o lincoln_n the_o pope_n delegate_n to_o pull_v it_o off_o he_o answer_v i_o do_v not_o put_v it_o on_o in_o contempt_n of_o your_o lordship_n nor_o of_o the_o cardinal_n in_o that_o he_o come_v of_o royal_a blood_n etc._n etc._n but_o that_o by_o this_o my_o behaviour_n i_o may_v make_v it_o appear_v that_o i_o acknowledge_v in_o no_o point_n the_o usurp_a supremacy_n of_o rome_n and_o therefore_o i_o contemn_v and_o despite_v all_o authority_n come_v from_o the_o pope_n as_o for_o take_v off_o my_o cap_n do_v as_o it_o shall_v please_v your_o lordship_n and_o i_o shall_v be_v content_a 488._o when_o lincoln_n in_o a_o long_a rhetorical_a speech_n persuade_v he_o to_o recant_v etc._n etc._n he_o say_v my_o lord_n in_o your_o exhortation_n i_o have_v mark_v especial_o three_o point_n which_o you_o use_v to_o persuade_v i_o to_o leave_v my_o doctrine_n and_o religion_n which_o i_o perfect_o know_v and_o be_o thorough_o persuade_v to_o be_v ground_v not_o upon_o man_n imagination_n and_o decree_n but_o upon_o the_o infallible_a truth_n of_o christ_n gospel_n and_o to_o look_v back_o and_o return_v to_o the_o romish_a see_v contrary_a to_o my_o oath_n contrary_a to_o the_o prerogative_n and_o crown_n of_o this_o realm_n and_o especial_o which_o move_v i_o most_o contrary_a to_o the_o express_a word_n of_o god_n 1_o that_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n take_v his_o beginning_n from_o peter_n upon_o who_o you_o say_v christ_n have_v build_v his_o church_n have_v in_o all_o age_n lineal_o from_o bishop_n to_o bishop_n be_v bring_v to_o this_o time_n 2_o that_o the_o holy_a father_n in_o their_o write_n from_o time_n to_o time_n have_v confess_v the_o same_o 3_o that_o i_o be_v once_o of_o the_o same_o opinion_n for_o the_o first_o christ_n in_o say_v upon_o this_o stone_n do_v not_o mean_a peter_n himself_o etc._n etc._n but_o his_o confession_n that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n upon_o this_o rock-stone_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n for_o this_o be_v the_o foundation_n and_o beginning_n of_o all_o christianity_n with_o word_n heart_n and_o mind_n to_o confess_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n christ_n church_n be_v build_v not_o on_o the_o frailty_n of_o man_n but_o upon_o the_o stable_n and_o infallible_a word_n of_o god_n 489._o that_o christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n whilst_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n continue_v in_o the_o promotion_n and_o set_v forth_o of_o god_n glory_n and_o due_a preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n the_o father_n commend_v and_o honour_a rome_n and_o so_o do_v i_o but_o after_o the_o bishop_n of_o that_o see_v seek_v their_o own_o pride_n and_o not_o god_n honour_n set_v themselves_o above_o king_n challenge_v to_o they_o the_o title_n of_o god_n vicar_n etc._n etc._n i_o can_v but_o with_o s._n gregory_n a_o bishop_n of_o rome_n confess_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o that_o place_n be_v the_o very_a true_a antichrist_n whereof_o st._n john_n speak_v by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n for_o the_o three_o i_o can_v but_o confess_v i_o be_v once_o of_o the_o same_o religion_n you_o be_v of_o yet_o so_o be_v st._n paul_n a_o persecutor_n of_o christ._n lincoln_z farther_z urge_v he_o to_o recant_v 490._o etc._n etc._n he_o say_v be_o full_o persuade_v that_o christ_n church_n be_v found_v in_o every_o place_n where_o his_o gospel_n be_v true_o receive_v and_o effectual_o follow_v 491._o your_o gentleness_n be_v the_o same_o that_o christ_n have_v of_o the_o high_a priest_n your_o lordship_n say_v you_o have_v no_o power_n to_o condemn_v i_o neither_o at_o any_o time_n to_o put_v a_o man_n to_o death_n so_o the_o high_a priest_n say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o they_o to_o put_v any_o man_n to_o death_n but_o commit_v christ_n to_o pilate_n neither_o will_v suffer_v he_o
to_o absolve_v christ_n although_o he_o seek_v to_o do_v it_o what_o say_v dr._n weston_n do_v you_o make_v the_o king_n pilate_n no_o dr._n say_v ridley_n i_o do_v but_o compare_v your_o deed_n with_o caiaphas_n his_o deed_n and_o the_o high_a priest_n who_o will_v condemn_v no_o man_n to_o death_n as_o you_o will_v not_o and_o yet_o will_v not_o suffer_v pilate_n to_o deliver_v christ._n 492._o be_v require_v to_o answer_v to_o his_o article_n present_o though_o he_o have_v time_n give_v he_o till_o the_o morrow_n first_o say_v he_o i_o require_v the_o notary_n to_o take_v and_o write_v my_o protestation_n that_o in_o no_o point_n i_o acknowledge_v your_o authority_n or_o admit_v you_o to_o be_v my_o judge_n as_o you_o be_v authorize_v from_o the_o pope_n etc._n etc._n 498._o at_o last_o the_o bishop_n of_o lincoln_n with_o his_o cap_n in_o his_o hand_n desire_v he_o to_o turn_v but_o dr._n ridley_n make_v a_o absolute_a answer_n that_o he_o be_v full_o persuade_v the_o religion_n he_o defend_v to_o be_v ground_v on_o god_n word_n and_o therefore_o without_o great_a offence_n towards_o god_n great_a peril_n and_o damage_n of_o his_o soul_n he_o can_v not_o forsake_v his_o master_n and_o lord_n god_n for_o my_o part_n say_v weston_n i_o take_v god_n to_o witness_v i_o be_o sorry_a for_o you_o i_o believe_v it_o well_o my_o lord_n say_v ridley_n forasmuch_o as_o one_o day_n it_o will_v be_v burdenous_a to_o your_o soul._n 500_o after_o sentence_n be_v read_v against_o he_o the_o bishop_n of_o gloucester_n come_v to_o his_o prison_n and_o will_v have_v persuade_v he_o yet_o to_o recant_v upon_o promise_n of_o the_o queen_n mercy_n but_o he_o answer_v he_o my_o lord_n you_o know_v my_o mind_n full_o herein_o and_o for_o the_o doctrine_n which_o i_o have_v teach_v my_o conscience_n assure_v i_o it_o be_v sound_a and_o according_a to_o god_n word_n to_o his_o glory_n be_v it_o speak_v the_o which_o doctrine_n the_o lord_n god_n be_v my_o helper_n i_o will_v maintain_v so_o long_o as_o my_o tongue_n shall_v wag_v and_o breath_n be_v within_o my_o body_n and_o in_o confirmation_n thereof_o seal_v the_o same_o with_o my_o blood_n do_v with_o i_o as_o it_o shall_v please_v god_n to_o suffer_v you_o i_o be_o well_o content_a to_o abide_v the_o same_o with_o all_o my_o heart_n the_o servant_n be_v not_o above_o his_o master_n if_o they_o deal_v so_o cruel_o with_o our_o saviour_n christ_n as_o the_o scripture_n make_v mention_v and_o he_o suffer_v the_o same_o patient_o how_o much_o more_o do_v it_o become_v we_o his_o servant_n the_o bishop_n bid_v he_o to_o hold_v his_o peace_n he_o answer_v that_o so_o long_o as_o his_o tongue_n and_o breath_n will_v suffer_v he_o he_o will_v speak_v against_o their_o abominable_a do_n whatsoever_o happen_v unto_o he_o for_o so_o do_v when_o in_o the_o degrade_n of_o he_o they_o read_v we_o do_v take_v from_o you_o the_o office_n of_o preach_v the_o gospel_n etc._n etc._n dr._n ridley_n give_v a_o great_a sigh_n and_o look_v up_o towards_o heaven_n say_v o_o lord_n god_n forgive_v they_o this_o their_o wickedness_n after_o his_o degradation_n brook_v the_o bishop_n of_o gloucester_n refuse_v to_o talk_v with_o he_o 501._o he_o say_v see_v that_o you_o will_v not_o suffer_v i_o to_o talk_v neither_o will_v vouchsafe_v to_o hear_v i_o what_o remedy_n but_o patience_n i_o refer_v my_o cause_n to_o my_o heavenly_a father_n who_o will_v reform_v thing_n that_o be_v amiss_o when_o it_o shall_v please_v he_o in_o his_o supplication_n to_o the_o queen_n it_o may_v please_v your_o majesty_n for_o christ_n our_o saviour_n sake_n in_o a_o matter_n of_o conscience_n and_o now_o not_o for_o myself_o but_o for_o other_o poor_a man_n to_o vouchsafe_v to_o hear_v and_o understand_v this_o humble_a supplication_n it_o be_v so_o honourable_a princess_n that_o whilst_o i_o be_v bishop_n of_o london_n divers_a tenant_n take_v lease_n of_o i_o and_o the_o cha●ter_n for_o valuable_a consideration_n but_o now_o bishop_n bonner_n will_v not_o allow_v those_o lease_n which_o must_v redound_v to_o many_o poor_a man_n utter_a ruin_n wherefore_o this_o be_v my_o humble_a supplication_n that_o either_o their_o lease_n may_v stand_v or_o their_o money_n be_v restore_v to_o they_o and_o their_o former_a lease_n now_o the_o fine_n pay_v to_o i_o may_v easy_o be_v repay_v if_o you_o will_v be_v please_v to_o command_v some_o portion_n of_o those_o good_n i_o leave_v in_o my_o house_n to_o be_v sell_v for_o that_o end_n i_o suppose_v half_a of_o the_o value_n of_o my_o plate_n will_v go_v nigh_o to_o restore_v all_o such_o fine_n receive_v 502._o when_o bishop_n brook_v deliver_v dr._n ridley_n to_o the_o bailiff_n charge_v they_o not_o to_o suffer_v any_o to_o speak_v with_o he_o and_o to_o bring_v he_o to_o the_o place_n of_o execution_n when_o they_o be_v command_v he_o say_v god_n i_o thank_v thou_o and_o to_o thy_o praise_n be_v it_o speak_v there_o be_v none_o of_o you_o all_o able_a to_o lay_v to_o my_o charge_n any_o open_a or_o notorious_a crime_n for_o if_o you_o can_v it_o shall_v sure_o be_v lay_v in_o my_o lap_n i_o see_v very_o well_o you_o play_v the_o part_n of_o a_o proud_a pharisee_n say_v brook_n exalt_v and_o praise_v yourself_o no_o no_o no_o say_v ridley_n to_o god_n glory_n only_o be_v it_o speak_v i_o confess_v myself_o to_o be_v a_o miserable_a wretched_a sinner_n and_o have_v great_a need_n of_o god_n help_n and_o mercy_n and_o do_v daily_o call_v and_o cry_v for_o the_o same_o the_o night_n before_o he_o suffer_v his_o beard_n be_v wash_v and_o his_o leg_n and_o as_o he_o sit_v at_o supper_n with_o mr._n mr._n irish_a and_o mrs._n irish_a he_o invite_v they_o to_o his_o marriage_n to_o morrow_n say_v he_o i_o must_v be_v marry_v and_o be_v as_o merry_a as_o ever_o in_o all_o his_o life_n wish_v his_o sister_n he_o ask_v his_o brother_n sit_v at_o the_o table_n whether_o she_o can_v find_v in_o her_o heart_n to_o be_v there_o o●_n no_o yea_o i_o dare_v say_v say_v his_o brother_n with_o all_o her_o heart_n i_o be_o glad_a to_o hear_v so_o much_o of_o she_o say_v dr._n ridley_n at_o this_o talk_n mrs._n irish_a weep_v whereupon_o dr._n ridley_n say_v o_o mrs._n irish_a you_o love_v i_o not_o now_o i_o see-well_a enough_o for_o in_o that_o you_o weep_v it_o do_v appear_v you_o will_v not_o be_v at_o my_o marriage_n neither_o be_v content_a therewith_o indeed_o you_o be_v not_o so_o much_o my_o friend_n as_o i_o think_v you_o have_v be_v but_o quiet_a yourself_o though_o my_o breakfast_n shall_v be_v somewhat_o sharp_a and_o painful_a yet_o i_o be_o sure_a my_o supper_n shall_v be_v more_o pleasant_a and_o sweet_a when_o he_o arise_v from_o the_o table_n his_o brother_n offer_v he_o to_o watch_v all_o night_n with_o he_o but_o he_o say_v no_o no_o no_o that_o you_o shall_v not_o for_o i_o mind_n god_n will_v to_o go_v to_o bed_n and_o sleep_v as_o quiet_o to_o night_n ●s_v ever_o i_o do_v in_o my_o life_n when_o he_o espy_v mr._n latimer_n at_o the_o stake_n he_o run_v to_o he_o embrace_v and_o kiss_v he_o and_o say_v be_v of_o good_a heart_n brother_n for_o god_n will_v either_o assuage_v the_o fury_n of_o the_o flame_n or_o else_o strengthen_v we_o to_o abide_v it_o after_o dr._n smith_n have_v preach_v on_o 1_o cor._n 13._o 503._o if_o i_o give_v my_o body_n to_o be_v burn_v etc._n etc._n dr._n ridley_n kneel_v down_o on_o his_o knee_n towards_o the_o lord_n williams_n etc._n etc._n ●nd_v say_v i_o beseech_v you_o my_o lord_n even_o for_o christ_n like_a that_o i_o may_v speak_v but_o two_o or_o three_o word_n whereupon_o the_o bailiff_n and_o dr._n marshal_n vicechancellor_n of_o oxford_n run_v hasty_o to_o he_o and_o with_o their_o hand_n stop_v his_o mouth_n and_o say_v mr._n ridley_n if_o you_o will_v recant_v you_o shall_v not_o only_o have_v liberty_n to_o speak_v but_o your_o life_n not_o otherwise_o say_v ridley_n no_o say_a marshal_n well_o say_v dr._n ridley_n so_o long_o be_v the_o breath_n be_v in_o my_o body_n i_o will_v never_o deny_v my_o lord_n christ_n and_o his_o know_a truth_n god_n will_v be_v do_v in_o i_o i_o commit_v our_o cause_n to_o almighty_a god_n who_o shall_v indifferent_o judge_v all_o be_v in_o his_o shirt_n he_o say_v o_o heavenly_a father_n i_o give_v unto_o thou_o most_o hearty_a thanks_o for_o that_o thou_o ●ast_v call_v i_o to_o be_v a_o professor_n of_o thou_o even_o unto_o death_n i_o beseech_v thou_o lord_n god_n take_v mercy_n upon_o this_o realm_n of_o england_n and_o deliver_v the_o same_o from_o all_o her_o enemy_n to_o the_o smith_n he_o say_v good_a fellow_n knock_v in_o the_o chain_n hard_o for_o the_o flesh_n
will_v have_v his_o course_n when_o his_o brother_n bring_v he_o gunpowder_n he_o say_v i_o will_v take_v it_o to_o be_v send_v of_o god_n therefore_o i_o will_v receive_v it_o as_o send_v of_o he_o to_o my_o lord_n williams_n he_o say_v my_o lord_n i_o must_v be_v a_o suitor_n to_o you_o for_o divers_a poor_a man_n and_o my_o sister_n etc._n etc._n there_o be_v nothing_o in_o all_o this_o world_n trouble_v my_o conscience_n i_o praise_v god_n this_o only_o except_v when_o he_o see_v the_o fire_n flame_v towards_o he_o he_o say_v into_o thy_o hand_n o_o lord_n i_o commend_v my_o spirit_n lord_n receive_v my_o soul_n lord_n have_v mercy_n upon_o i_o 505._o in_o his_o letter_n to_o all_o his_o true_a friend_n i_o warn_v you_o all_o that_o you_o be_v not_o amaze_v or_o astonish_v at_o the_o kind_n of_o my_o departure_n and_o dissolution_n for_o i_o assure_v you_o i_o think_v it_o the_o most_o honour_n that_o ever_o i_o be_v call_v to_o in_o all_o my_o life_n and_o therefore_o i_o thank_v my_o lord_n god_n hearty_o for_o it_o etc._n etc._n for_o know_v you_o that_o i_o doubt_v no_o more_o but_o that_o the_o cause_n wherefore_o i_o be_o put_v to_o death_n be_v god_n cause_n and_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o truth_n than_o i_o doubt_v that_o the_o gospel_n which_o john_n write_v be_v the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n or_o that_o paul_n epistle_n be_v the_o very_a word_n of_o god_n and_o to_o have_v a_o heart_n willing_a to_o abide_v and_o stand_v in_o god_n cause_n and_o in_o christ_n quarrel_n even_o unto_o death_n i_o assure_v thou_o o_o man_n it_o be_v a_o inestimable_a gift_n of_o god_n give_v only_o to_o the_o true_a elect_n and_o dear_o belove_a child_n of_o god_n and_o inheritor_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n for_o the_o holy_a apostle_n and_o also_o martyr_n in_o christ_n cause_n st._n peter_n 1_o pet._n 4._o say_v if_o you_o suffer_v rebuke_n in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n i._n e._n in_o christ_n cause_n and_o for_o his_o truth_n sake_n then_o be_v you_o happy_a and_o bless_a for_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n rest_v upon_o you_o and_o if_o for_o rebuke_n suffer_v in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n a_o man_n be_v pronounce_v bless_a and_o happy_a how_o much_o more_o bless_a and_o happy_a be_v he_o that_o have_v the_o grace_n to_o suffer_v death_n also_o wherefore_o all_o you_o that_o be_v my_o true_a lover_n and_o friend_n rejoice_v and_o rejoice_v with_o i_o again_o and_o render_v with_o i_o hearty_a thanks_o to_o god_n our_o heavenly_a father_n that_o for_o his_o son_n sake_n my_o saviour_n and_o redeemer_n christ_n he_o have_v vouchsafe_v to_o call_v i_o be_v so_o vile_a and_o sinful_a a_o wretch_n in_o myself_o unto_o the_o high_a dignity_n of_o his_o true_a prophet_n of_o his_o faithful_a apostle_n and_o of_o his_o holy_a elect_a and_o choose_a martyr_n to_o die_v in_o defence_n and_o maintenance_n of_o his_o eternal_a and_o everlasting_a truth_n 507._o if_o you_o love_v i_o indeed_o you_o have_v cause_n to_o rejoice_v for_o that_o it_o have_v please_v god_n to_o call_v i_o to_o a_o great_a honour_n and_o dignity_n then_o ever_o i_o do_v enjoy_v before_o either_o in_o rochester_n or_o london_n or_o shall_v have_v have_v in_o durham_n whereunto_o i_o be_v last_o of_o all_o elect_a yea_o i_o count_v it_o great_a honour_n before_o god_n indeed_o to_o die_v in_o his_o cause_n then_o be_v any_o earthly_a or_o temporal_a promotion_n or_o honour_n that_o can_v be_v give_v to_o a_o man_n in_o this_o world_n and_o who_o be_v he_o that_o know_v the_o cause_n to_o be_v god_n to_o be_v christ_n quarrel_n and_o of_o his_o gospel_n to_o be_v the_o commonweal_n of_o all_o the_o elect_a and_o choose_a child_n of_o god_n of_o all_o the_o inheritor_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n who_o be_v he_o i_o say_v that_o know_v this_o assure_o by_o god_n own_o word_n and_o the_o testimony_n of_o his_o conscience_n as_o i_o through_o the_o infinite_a goodness_n of_o god_n not_o of_o myself_o but_o by_o his_o grace_n acknowledge_v myself_o to_o do_v and_o do_v in_o deed_n and_o in_o truth_n love_n and_o fear_n god_n love_n and_o believe_v his_o master_n christ_n and_o his_o bless_a gospel_n and_o the_o brotherhood_n the_o choose_a child_n of_o god_n and_o also_o lust_v and_o long_v for_o eternal_a life_n who_o be_v he_o i_o say_v again_o that_o will_v not_o that_o can_v find_v in_o his_o heart_n in_o this_o cause_n to_o be_v content_a to_o die_v 508._o farewell_o pembrohe_o hall_n in_o c._n of_o late_o i_o own_o college_n my_o cure_n and_o my_o charge_n what_o cafe_z thou_o be_v in_o now_o god_n know_v i_o know_v not_o well_o woe_n be_v i_o for_o thou_o i_o own_o dear_a college_n if_o ever_o thou_o suffer_v thyself_o by_o any_o mean_n to_o be_v bring_v from_o set_v forth_o god_n true_a word_n in_o thy_o orchard_n i_o learn_v without_o book_n all_o paul_n epistle_n yea_o and_o i_o ween_v all_o the_o canonical_a epistle_n save_v only_o the_o apocalypse_n of_o which_o study_n although_o in_o time_n a_o great_a part_n do_v depart_v from_o i_o yet_o the_o sweet_a smell_n thereof_o i_o trust_v i_o shall_v carry_v with_o i_o into_o heaven_n the_o lord_n grant_v that_o this_o zeal_n and_o love_n to_o that_o part_n of_o god_n word_n which_o be_v a_o key_n to_o all_o the_o scripture_n may_v ever_o abide_v in_o that_o college_n so_o long_o as_o the_o world_n shall_v endure_v o_o thou_o now_o wicked_a and_o bloody_a see_v of_o london_n etc._n etc._n harken_v thou_o whorish_a bawd_n of_o babylon_n thou_o wicked_a limb_n of_o antichrist_n thou_o bloody_a wolf_n why_o slay_v thou_o and_o make_v havoc_n of_o the_o prophet_n of_o god_n why_o murthereft_v thou_o so_o cruel_o christ_n poor_a silly_a sheep_n which_o will_v not_o hear_v thy_o voice_n because_o thou_o be_v a_o stranger_n and_o will_v follow_v none_o other_o but_o their_o own_o pastor_n christ_n his_o voice_n think_v thou_o to_o escape_v or_o that_o the_o lord_n will_v not_o require_v the_o blood_n of_o his_o saint_n at_o thy_o hand_n 509._o instead_o of_o my_o farewell_n to_o thou_o now_o i_o say_v fie_o upon_o thou_o fie_o upon_o thou_o silthy_a drab_n and_o all_o thy_o false_a prophet_n to_o you_o my_o lord_n of_o the_o temporality_n will_v i_o speak_v etc._n etc._n know_v you_o that_o i_o have_v before_o my_o eye_n only_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o christian_a charity_n towards_o you_o that_o move_v i_o to_o write_v for_o of_o you_o hereafter_o i_o look_v not_o in_o this_o world_n either_o for_o pleasure_n or_o displeasure_n if_o my_o talk_n shall_v do_v you_o never_o so_o much_o pleasure_n or_o profit_n you_o can_v promote_v i_o nor_o if_o i_o displease_v you_o can_v you_o harm_v i_o for_o i_o shall_v be_v out_o of_o your_o reach_n 510._o i_o say_v unto_o you_o as_o st._n paul_n say_v unto_o the_o galatian_n i_o wonder_v my_o lord_n what_o have_v bewitch_v you_o that_o you_o so_o sudden_o be_v fall_v from_o christ_n unto_o antichrist_n from_o christ_n gospel_n unto_o man_n tradition_n from_o the_o lord_n that_o buy_v you_o unto_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n i_o warn_v you_o of_o your_o peril_n be_v not_o deceive_v except_o you_o will_v be_v find_v willing_o consenter_n to_o your_o own_o death_n understand_v my_o lord_n it_o be_v neither_o for_o the_o privilege_n of_o the_o place_n or_o person_n thereof_o that_o the_o see_v and_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v call_v apostolic_a but_o for_o the_o true_a trade_n of_o christ_n religion_n which_o be_v teach_v and_o maintain_v in_o that_o see_v at_o the_o first_o of_o those_o godly_a man_n and_o therefore_o as_o true_o and_o just_o as_o that_o see_v then_o for_o that_o true_a trade_n of_o religion_n and_o consanguinity_n of_o doctrine_n with_o the_o religion_n and_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n apostle_n be_v call_v apostolic_a so_o as_o true_o and_o as_o just_o for_o the_o contrariety_n of_o religion_n and_o diversity_n of_o doctrine_n from_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n that_o see_v and_o the_o bishop_n thereof_o at_o this_o day_n both_o aught_o to_o be_v call_v and_o be_v indeed_o antichristian_a the_o see_v be_v the_o seat_n of_o satan_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o same_o that_o maintain_v the_o abomination_n thereof_o be_v antichrist_n himself_o indeed_o 511._o as_o for_o your_o displeasure_n by_o that_o time_n this_o shall_v come_v to_o your_o knowledge_n i_o trust_v by_o god_n grace_n to_o be_v in_o the_o hand_n and_o protection_n of_o the_o almighty_a my_o heavenly_a father_n the_o live_a lord_n the_o great_a of_o all_o and_o then_o i_o shall_v not_o need_v i_o trow_v to_o fear_v what_o any_o lord_n no_o nor_o what_o king_n or_o prince_n can_v do_v unto_o i_o much_o cause_n have_v you_o to_o
whole_a truth_n of_o his_o word_n after_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n gospel_n these_o be_v bid_v in_o the_o time_n of_o antichrist_n reign_v to_o fly_v into_o the_o mountain_n i._n e._n place_n of_o safeguard_n the_o woe_n that_o follow_v signify_v 519._o that_o such_o be_v then_o in_o extreme_a danger_n who_o be_v let_v by_o any_o mean_n whatsoever_o so_o that_o they_o be_v no_o way_n able_a to_o fly_v from_o the_o plague_n and_o christ_n bid_v to_o pray_v that_o our_o flight_n be_v not_o in_o winter_n nor_o on_o the_o sabbath_n day_n bid_v we_o to_o pray_v that_o we_o may_v fly_v in_o time_n and_o far_o enough_o from_o the_o danger_n of_o the_o plague_n rev._n 18._o the_o angel_n cry_v mighty_o with_o a_o loud_a voice_n fli●_n my_o people_n out_o of_o babylon_n lest_o you_o be_v infect_v with_o her_o fault_n and_o so_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o her_o plague_n for_o her_o offence_n and_o sin_n be_v grow_v so_o great_a that_o they_o come_v to_o heaven_n certain_o the_o time_n do_v approach_v and_o the_o lord_n day_n be_v at_o hand_n paul_n also_o that_o bless_a apostle_n forbid_v we_o 2_o cor._n 6._o to_o join_v ourselves_o with_o the_o unfaithful_a etc._n etc._n this_o counsel_n to_o depart_v the_o realm_n some_o good_a person_n may_v think_v good_a other_o may_v think_v it_o may_v indeed_o by_o god_n word_n be_v lawful_o do_v but_o not_o to_o be_v counsel_v to_o be_v do_v for_o they_o will_v peradventure_o say_v we_o shall_v counsel_v a_o man_n always_o to_o do_v that_o which_o be_v best_a of_o all_o and_o of_o most_o perfection_n but_o bold_o in_o christ_n cause_n to_o spend_v a_o man_n life_n be_v best_a of_o all_o and_o of_o most_o perfection_n and_o to_o flee_v may_v smell_v of_o cowardliness_n whereas_o in_o many_o thing_n that_o which_o be_v best_a for_o one_o at_o sometime_o be_v not_o best_o for_o all_o at_o all_o time_n and_o it_o be_v not_o meet_v for_o a_o child_n to_o covet_v to_o run_v before_o he_o can_v go_v but_o every_o true_a christian_a either_o brother_n or_o sister_n after_o they_o be_v be_v call_v and_o bring_v into_o the_o wrestling-place_n to_o strive_v in_o christ_n cause_n for_o the_o best_a game_n i._n e._n to_o confess_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o hope_n of_o everlasting_a life_n shall_v not_o shrink_v nor_o relent_v one_o inch_n nor_o give_v back_o whatsoever_o shall_v befall_v but_o to_o stand_v to_o their_o tackle_n and_o stick_v by_o it_o even_o unto_o death_n as_o they_o will_v christ_n shall_v stick_v by_o they_o at_o the_o late_a day_n some_o may_v think_v they_o may_v stay_v and_o escape_v the_o danger_n notwithstanding_o by_o keep_v their_o faith_n and_o religion_n close_o to_o themselves_o inward_o worship_v god_n in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n 520._o and_o outward_o not_o transgress_v common_a order_n whereas_o god_n word_n require_v not_o only_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o heart_n but_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o mouth_n forbid_v not_o only_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v evil_a but_o to_o abstain_v from_o all_o appearance_n of_o evil_n and_o both_o consenter_n and_o doer_n be_v account_v guilty_a by_o god_n word_n and_o we_o may_v not_o do_v evil_a that_o good_a may_v come_v thereof_o thy_o heart_n thou_o say_v god_n shall_v have_v and_o yet_o will_v suffer_v thy_o body_n to_o do_v the_o thing_n that_o god_n abhor_v take_v heed_n o_o man_n what_o thou_o say_v thou_o can_v not_o deceive_v the_o heart-searcher_n to_o give_v god_n thy_o heart_n be_v to_o give_v he_o thy_o whole_a heart_n to_o love_v he_o to_o dread_v he_o and_o to_o trust_v in_o he_o above_o all_o other_o thing_n and_o he_o love_v god_n that_o keep_v his_o command_n and_o to_o dread_a god_n above_o all_o other_o be_v rather_o willing_o to_o incur_v the_o danger_n and_o peril_n of_o all_o fearful_a thing_n then_o witting_o to_o do_v what_o god_n forbid_v and_o to_o trust_v in_o he_o above_o all_o thing_n be_v assure_o to_o trust_v to_o his_o promise_n of_o his_o reward_n and_o of_o his_o tuition_n and_o of_o his_o goodness_n and_o mercy_n and_o to_o prefer_v that_o above_o all_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n seem_v they_o never_o so_o strong_a so_o wise_a or_o so_o good_a now_o how_o can_v thou_o say_v true_o that_o god_n have_v thus_o thy_o heart_n when_o thy_o deed_n do_v declare_v far_o another_o thing_n thy_o body_n o_o man_n be_v god_n and_o all_o the_o part_n thereof_o even_o as_o thy_o soul_n be_v he_o make_v they_o both_o and_o christ_n with_o his_o blood_n redeem_v they_o both_o and_o be_v lord_n of_o both_o for_o he_o have_v buy_v they_o both_o dear_o and_o dare_v thou_o suffer_v any_o part_n of_o either_o of_o they_o to_o do_v service_n to_o satan_n sure_o in_o so_o do_v thou_o commit_v sacrilege_n and_o do_v rob_v god_n what_o be_v it_o to_o bear_v the_o mark_n of_o the_o beast_n in_o the_o forehead_n and_o in_o the_o hand_n that_o st._n john_n speak_v of_o i_o suppose_v he_o bear_v the_o mark_n of_o the_o beast_n in_o his_o forehead_n which_o be_v not_o ashamed_a of_o the_o beast_n way_n but_o will_v profess_v they_o open_o and_o he_o bear_v his_o mark_n in_o the_o hand_n that_o do_v the_o work_n though_o he_o may_v be_v ashamed_a to_o own_v they_o 521._o it_o may_v be_v object_v o_o sir_n it_o be_v no_o small_a matter_n you_o speak_v of_o to_o depart_v from_o a_o man_n own_o native_a country_n into_o a_o strange_a realm_n some_o have_v land_n and_o possession_n which_o they_o can_v carry_v with_o they_o some_o have_v father_n mother_n wife_n child_n and_o kinsfolk_n from_o who_o to_o depart_v be_v as_o hard_a a_o thing_n and_o almost_o all_o one_o as_o to_o suffer_v death_n etc._n etc._n i_o grant_v here_o thou_o may_v heap_v a_o number_n of_o worldly_a in_o commodity_n which_o be_v very_o like_a to_o ensue_v the_o departure_n out_o of_o a_o man_n own_o country_n but_o what_o of_o all_o these_o and_o a_o thousand_o more_o of_o the_o like_a sort_n i_o will_v set_v against_o they_o all_o one_o say_v of_o christ_n which_o to_o the_o true_a christian_a be_v able_a to_o countervail_v all_o these_o yea_o to_o weigh_v they_o down_o viz._n if_o any_o man_n do_v come_v to_o i_o and_o do_v not_o hate_v father_n and_o mother_n he_o mean_v and_o will_v not_o in_o his_o cause_n forsake_v his_o father_n and_o mother_n etc._n etc._n he_o can_v be_v my_o disciple_n it_o may_v further_o be_v object_v alas_o sir_n i_o be_o a_o impotent_a man_n a_o age_a man_n a_o sick_a man_n a_o lame_a man_n or_o i_o have_v so_o many_o small_a infant_n &_o a_o wife_n which_o live_v by_o my_o labour_n if_o i_o leave_v they_o they_o will_v starve_v and_o i_o be_o not_o able_a to_o carry_v they_o with_o i_o such_o be_v my_o state_n what_o shall_v i_o do_v o_o lamentable_a state_n o_o sorrowful_a heart_n that_o can_v neither_o depart_v nor_o without_o extreme_a peril_n be_v able_a to_o tarry_v still_o of_o the_o state_n of_o such_o as_o be_v not_o able_a to_o fly_v the_o infection_n of_o the_o pestiferous_a plague_n of_o antichrist_n abomination_n christ_n lament_v not_o curse_v sai_z woe_n be_v to_o the_o great_a belly_a and_o travel_a woman_n etc._n etc._n for_o these_o my_o heart_n mourn_v the_o more_o the_o less_o i_o be_o able_a to_o give_v any_o comfortable_a counsel_n but_o this_o that_o always_o as_o they_o look_v for_o everlasting_a life_n they_o abide_v still_o in_o the_o confession_n of_o his_o truth_n whatsoever_o shall_v befall_v and_o for_o the_o rest_n to_o put_v their_o trust_n whole_o in_o god_n who_o be_v able_a to_o save_v they_o against_o all_o appearance_n and_o common_o in_o extremity_n when_o all_o worldly_a comfort_n fail_v and_o the_o danger_n be_v at_o high_a then_o unto_o his_o he_o be_v wont_n after_o his_o accustom_a mercy_n to_o be_v most_o ready_a to_o put_v his_o help_a hand_n instance_n in_o daniel_n the_o three_o child_n paul_n pluck_v out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o lion_n in_o the_o mount_n god_n raise_v up_o most_o of_o the_o judge_n for_o the_o deliver_n of_o his_o people_n 522._o as_o to_o such_o instance_n it_o may_v be_v object_v these_o be_v special_a miracle_n of_o god_n which_o now_o be_v cease_v and_o to_o require_v they_o at_o god_n hand_n be_v it_o not_o to_o tempt_v god_n i_o grant_v such_o be_v great_a wonderful_a work_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n but_o god_n hand_n be_v as_o strong_a as_o ever_o it_o be_v and_o he_o be_v as_o good_a and_o as_o gracious_a as_o ever_o he_o be_v but_o in_o such_o as_o be_v put_v to_o death_n for_o his_o sake_n he_o do_v more_o when_o in_o anguish_n of_o the_o torment_n he_o stand_v by_o they_o and_o strengthen_v they_o in_o their_o say_v to_o suffer_v in_o confession_n of_o
examine_v before_o i_o 123._o the_o lord_n grant_v we_o grace_n to_o stand_v together_o fight_v lawful_o in_o his_o cause_n till_o we_o be_v smite_v down_o together_o if_o the_o lord_n will_v be_v so_o to_o permit_v it_o for_o there_o shall_v not_o a_o hair_n of_o our_o head_n perish_v against_o his_o will_n but_o with_o his_o will_n whereunto_o the_o same_o lord_n grant_v we_o to_o be_v obedient_a unto_o the_o end_n and_o in_o the_o end_n amen_n sweet_a mighty_a and_o merciful_a lord_n jesus_n the_o son_n of_o david_n and_o of_o god_n amen_o amen_n let_v every_o true_a christian_a say_v and_o pray_v i_o tell_v the_o chancellor_n that_o i_o will_v not_o be_v out_o of_o the_o catholic_n church_n but_o into_o his_o church_n by_o god_n grace_n 124._o i_o will_v never_o come_v well_o say_v he_o then_o be_v our_o church_n false_a and_o antichristian_a yes_o say_a 1_n when_o i_o desire_v leave_v to_o confirm_v my_o doctrine_n by_o writing_n you_o will_v not_o grant_v it_o because_o i_o be_v a_o private_a person_n and_o the_o parliament_n be_v above_o the_o authority_n of_o all_o private_a person_n and_o therefore_o the_o sentence_n thereof_o may_v not_o be_v find_v fault_n with_o etc._n etc._n and_o yet_o my_o lord_n say_v i_o i_o can_v show_v that_o one_o man_n have_v come_v into_o a_o general_a council_n and_o after_o the_o whole_a have_v agree_v upon_o a_o article_n have_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n declare_v so_o pithy_o that_o the_o council_n have_v err_v in_o declare_v the_o say_a article_n that_o he_o cause_v the_o whole_a council_n to_o alter_v their_o act._n panormitanus_fw-la also_o say_v i_o say_v that_o unto_o a_o simple_a layman_n that_o bring_v the_o word_n of_o god_n with_o he_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v give_v more_o credit_n then_o to_o a_o whole_a council_n assemble_v together_o the_o chancellor_n face_v i_o and_o hope_v to_o dash_v i_o out_o of_o cowtenance_n i_o tell_v he_o in_o that_o cause_n be_v god_n cause_n he_o shall_v not_o make_v i_o afraid_a to_o speak_v i_o be_v never_o the_o worse_o but_o the_o better_a to_o be_v earnest_a in_o a_o just_a and_o true_a cause_n and_o in_o my_o master_n christ_n matter_n 125._o when_o winchester_n have_v read_v the_o condemnation_n he_o declare_v that_o i_o be_v in_o the_o great_a curse_n etc._n etc._n well_o my_o lord_n say_v i_o here_o i_o stand_v before_o god_n and_o you_o and_o all_o this_o honourable_a audience_n and_o take_v he_o to_o witness_v that_o i_o never_o witting_o nor_o willing_o teach_v any_o false_a doctrine_n and_o therefore_o have_v i_o a_o good_a conscience_n before_o god_n and_o all_o good_a man_n 126._o i_o be_o sure_a you_o and_o i_o shall_v come_v before_o a_o god_n that_o be_v righteous_a before_o who_o i_o shall_v be_v as_o good_a a_o man_n as_o you_o and_o i_o nothing_o doubt_v but_o that_o i_o shall_v be_v find_v there_o a_o true_a member_n of_o the_o true_a catholic_n church_n of_o christ_n and_o everlasting_o save_v and_o as_o for_o your_o false_a church_n you_o need_v not_o to_o excommunicate_v i_o forth_o of_o it_o i_o have_v not_o be_v in_o it_o these_o twenty_o year_n the_o lord_n be_v thank_v therefore_o but_o now_o you_o have_v do_v what_o you_o can_v my_o lord_n i_o pray_v you_o yet_o grant_v i_o one_o thing_n that_o my_o poor_a wife_n be_v a_o stranger_n and_o have_v ten_o child_n by_o i_o may_v come_v and_o speak_v with_o i_o as_o long_o as_o i_o live_v she_o shall_v not_o come_v at_o thou_o say_v he_o then_o i_o have_v try_v out_o all_o your_o charity_n say_v i._o two_o thing_n more_o i_o purpose_v to_o have_v touch_v if_o i_o can_v have_v be_v permit_v the_o one_o how_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o a_o private_a man_n to_o reason_n and_o write_v against_o a_o wicked_a act_n of_o parliament_n or_o ungodly_a council_n etc._n etc._n the_o other_o be_v to_o prove_v that_o prosperity_n be_v not_o always_o a_o token_n of_o god_n love_n 5._o for_o the_o first_o i_o shall_v add_v one_o example_n more_o the_o high_a priest_n the_o elder_n scribe_n and_o pharisee_n decree_v in_o their_o council_n and_o give_v ●he_n same_o command_n to_o the_o apostle_n that_o they_o shall_v ●ot_n preach_v in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n as_o you_o have_v also_o forbid_v we_o notwithstanding_o when_o they_o be_v charge_v therewithal_o they_o answer_v we_o ought_v more_v to_o obey_v god_n then_o man_n even_o so_o we_o may_v answer_v you_o god_n be_v more_o to_o be_v obey_v then_o man_n and_o your_o wicked_a law_n can_v so_o tongue-tie_v we_o but_o we_o will_v speak_v the_o truth_n the_o apostle_n be_v beat_v for_o their_o boldness_n and_o they_o rejoice_v that_o they_o suffer_v for_o christ_n cause_n you_o have_v also_o provide_v rod_n for_o ●s_n and_o bloody_a whip_n yet_o when_o you_o have_v do_v that_o which_o god_n hand_n and_o counsel_n have_v determine_v that_o you_o shall_v do_v be_v it_o life_n or_o death_n i_o trust_v that_o ●od_n will_v so_o assist_v we_o by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n and_o grace_n that_o we_o shall_v patient_o suffer_v it_o and_o praise_n god_n for_o it_o and_o whatsoever_o become_v of_o i_o and_o other_o which_o now_o suffer_v for_o speak_v and_o profess_v the_o truth_n yet_o be_v you_o sure_a that_o god_n word_n will_v prevail_v and_o have_v the_o upper_a hand_n when_o your_o bloody_a law_n and_o wicked_a decree_n for_o want_v of_o sure_a foundation_n shall_v fall_v in_o the_o dust_n for_o the_o second_o point_n it_o may_v please_v your_o lordship_n to_o understand_v that_o we_o poor_a preacher_n who_o you_o so_o evil_a entreat_v do_v most_o bold_o and_o plain_o rebuke_v the_o evil_a government_n of_o those_o under_o king_n edward_n in_o many_o thing_n especial_o their_o covetousness_n and_o neglect_v and_o small_a regard_n to_o live_v after_o the_o gospel_n as_o also_o their_o negligence_n to_o occasion_v other_o to_o live_v thereafter_o i_o may_v instance_n in_o what_o i_o once_o do_v at_o paul_n cross_n for_o which_o i_o be_v fain_o to_o answer_v before_o all_o the_o council_n and_o many_o of_o my_o brethren_n do_v the_o like_a so_o that_o we_o for_o the_o not_o rebuke_v of_o their_o fault_n shall_v not_o answer_v before_o god_n nor_o be_v blame-worthy_a before_o man_n i_o be_o a_o english_a man_n bear_v and_o god_n know_v do_v natural_o wish_v well_o to_o my_o country_n 128._o i_o have_v often_o prove_v that_o the_o thing_n which_o i_o have_v much_o fear_v shall_v come_v to_o pass_v have_v indeed_o follow_v i_o fear_v you_o have_v and_o will_n with_o your_o govern_n bring_v england_n out_o of_o god_n blessing_n into_o a_o warm_a sun_n i_o pray_v god_n i_o may_v fail_v of_o my_o guess_v in_o this_o behalf_n but_o true_o that_o england_n welfare_n will_v not_o be_v with_o expelling_a the_o true_a word_n of_o god_n out_o of_o the_o realm_n and_o the_o shed_v innocent_a blood_n god_n work_n be_v wonderful_a and_o incomprehensible_a by_o man_n wisdom_n etc._n etc._n he_o have_v put_v his_o belove_a and_o dear_a heart_n into_o his_o enemy_n hand_n 12._o this_o to_o worldly_a wise_a man_n be_v a_o madness_n above_o all_o madness_n and_o yet_o god_n do_v this_o can_v the_o world_n show_v the_o cause_n this_o i_o be_o right_a sure_a of_o that_o it_o be_v not_o because_o they_o be_v in_o heresy_n and_o subject_a to_o false_a god_n service_n and_o idolatry_n and_o their_o enemy_n man_n of_o god_n and_o belove_v of_o god_n the_o herod_n and_o pharaoh_n plain_o determine_v that_o if_o the_o man_n which_o they_o kill_v and_o handle_v evil_n have_v be_v god_n people_n god_n will_v never_o have_v suffer_v they_o to_o come_v into_o their_o hand_n but_o rather_o have_v do_v the_o contrary_a and_o have_v let_v john_n baptist_n kill_v herod_n and_o the_o israelite_n pharaoh_n and_o nabuchadnezzar_n even_o the_o like_a be_v now_o to_o be_v see_v in_o we_o and_o in_o our_o most_o cruel_a adversary_n they_o be_v not_o therefore_o the_o catholic_n church_n because_o our_o merciful_a god_n have_v at_o this_o present_a give_v our_o life_n into_o their_o hand_n neither_o be_v we_o therefore_o heretic_n because_o we_o suffer_v punishment_n at_o their_o hand_n 129._o the_o holy_a man_n of_o god_n record_v in_o scripture_n be_v in_o their_o day_n account_v to_o be_v heretic_n seditious_a and_o disturber_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n but_o here_o they_o will_v cry_v out_o lo_o these_o man_n will_v be_v still_o like_a ●●hn_n baptist_n the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n etc._n etc._n i_o an●●er_v we_o make_v not_o ourselves_o like_a to_o they_o in_o do_v miracle_n etc._n etc._n but_o only_o in_o this_o in_o doctrine_n and_o in_o offer_v persecution_n and_o infamy_n for_o the_o same_o we_o ●●ve_v preach_v their_o very_a doctrine_n and_o none_o other_o ●●ing_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n
for_o his_o noble_a birth_n not_o the_o blood_n of_o my_o progenitor_n say_v he_o but_o christian_a profession_n make_v i_o noble_a when_o the_o captain_n command_v his_o side_n to_o be_v lance_v with_o knife_n until_o the_o bone_n appear_v white_a again_o sorry_a be_o i_o o_o captain_n say_v he_o not_o that_o my_o flesh_n shall_v be_v thus_o cut_v and_o mangle_v but_o for_o thy_o cause_n be_o i_o sorrowful_a who_o be_v corrupt_v with_o damnable_a error_n seduce_v other_o he_o preach_v the_o second_o time_n the_o live_a god_n and_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n his_o well-beloved_a son_n and_o eternal_a life_n through_o faith_n in_o his_o blood_n together_o with_o the_o abomination_n of_o idolatry_n etc._n etc._n whereupon_o his_o face_n be_v buffet_v his_o eyelid_n tear_v with_o their_o nail_n his_o cheek_n scotch_v with_o knife_n the_o skin_n of_o his_o beard_n be_v pluck_v by_o little_a and_o little_a from_o the_o flesh_n etc._n etc._n thereupon_o the_o meek_a martyr_n say_v i_o thank_v thou_o o_o captain_n that_o thou_o have_v open_v unto_o i_o many_o mouth_n whereby_o i_o may_v preach_v my_o lord_n and_o saviour_n christ_n look_v how_o many_o wound_n i_o have_v so_o many_o mouth_n i_o have_v laud_v and_o praise_v god_n when_o the_o captain_n blaspheme_o say_v thy_o crucify_a christ_n be_v but_o a_o yesterday_n god_n the_o god_n of_o the_o gentile_n be_v of_o most_o antiquity_n romanus_n desire_v the_o captain_n to_o hear_v what_o a_o child_n of_o seven_o year_n of_o age_n will_v say_v his_o request_n be_v grant_v tell_v i_o my_o babe_n say_v romanus_n whether_o thou_o think_v it_o reason_n that_o we_o worship_v one_o christ_n and_o in_o christ_n one_o father_n or_o else_o that_o we_o worship_v infinite_a god_n to_o who_o the_o babe_n answer_v that_o certain_o whatsoever_o it_o be_v that_o man_n affirm_v to_o be_v god_n must_v needs_o be_v one_o which_o with_o one_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o and_o in_o as_o much_o as_o this_o one_o be_v christ_n of_o necessity_n christ_n must_v be_v the_o true_a god_n for_o that_o there_o be_v many_o god_n we_o child_n can_v believe_v the_o captain_n hereat_o amaze_v say_v thou_o young_a villain_n and_o traitor_n where_o and_o of_o who_o learn_v thou_o this_o lesson_n of_o my_o mother_n say_v the_o child_n with_o who_o milk_n i_o suck_v in_o this_o lesson_n that_o i_o must_v believe_v in_o christ._n the_o captain_n thereupon_o command_v the_o child_n to_o be_v hoist_a up_o and_o scourge_v the_o joyful_a mother_n only_o see_v that_o sight_n with_o dry_a eye_n yea_o the_o rebuke_v her_o sweet_a babe_n for_o crave_v a_o draught_n of_o cold_a water_n she_o charge_v he_o to_o thirst_v after_o the_o cup_n that_o the_o infant_n of_o bethlem_n once_o drink_v of_o forget_v their_o mother_n milk_n and_o pap_n she_o will_v he_o to_o remember_v little_a isaac_n who_o behold_v the_o sword_n wherewith_o and_o the_o altar_n whereon_o he_o shall_v be_v sacrifice_v willing_o proffer_v his_o tender_a neck_n to_o the_o dint_n of_o his_o father_n sword_n then_o the_o butcherly_a tormentor_n pluck_v the_o skin_n from_o the_o crown_n of_o his_o head_n hair_z and_o all_z the_o mother_n cry_v suffer_v my_o child_n anon_o thou_o shall_v pass_v to_o he_o that_o will_v adorn_v thy_o naked_a head_n with_o a_o crown_n of_o eternal_a glory_n the_o child_n receive_v the_o stripe_n with_o a_o smile_a countenance_n as_o they_o lay_v hand_n on_o romanus_n to_o carry_v he_o to_o the_o place_n of_o execution_n he_o look_v back_o and_o say_v i_o appeal_v from_o this_o thy_o tyranny_n o_o judge_n unjust_a unto_o the_o righteous_a throne_n of_o christ_n that_o upright_a judge_n not_o because_o i_o fear_v thy_o cruel_a torment_n and_o merciless_a handle_n but_o that_o thy_o judgement_n may_v be_v know_v to_o be_v cruel_a and_o bloody_a when_o the_o tormentor_n require_v the_o child_n of_o the_o mother_n 117._o who_o have_v take_v it_o up_o in_o her_o arm_n she_o kiss_v it_o deliver_v the_o babe_n and_o say_v farewell_o my_o sweet_a child_n and_o as_o the_o hangman_n be_v cut_v off_o its_o head_n she_o sing_v all_o laud_n and_o praise_n with_o heart_n and_o voice_n o_o lord_n we_o yield_v to_o thou_o to_o who_o the_o death_n of_o all_o thy_o saint_n we_o know_v most_o dear_a to_o be_v when_o romanus_n be_v cast_v into_o the_o fire_n he_o say_v he_o shall_v not_o burn_v according_o a_o great_a storm_n arise_v as_o it_o be_v report_v and_o quench_v the_o fire_n then_o his_o tongue_n be_v cut_v out_o nevertheless_o he_o speak_v say_v he_o that_o speak_v christ_n shall_v never_o want_v a_o tongue_n think_v not_o that_o the_o voice_n that_o utter_v christ_n have_v need_n of_o the_o tongue_n to_o be_v the_o minister_n eusebius_n say_v 320._o that_o by_o his_o constancy_n in_o endure_v his_o tongue_n to_o be_v pull_v out_o of_o his_o mouth_n he_o real_o declare_v to_o all_o that_o a_o divine_a virtue_n be_v never_o want_v to_o any_o who_o suffer_v for_o godliness_n sake_n which_o do_v both_o mitigate_v their_o grief_n and_o corroborate_v their_o heart_n this_o valiant_a soldier_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o at_o all_o terrify_v thereat_o but_o of_o his_o own_o accord_n put_v out_o his_o tongue_n and_o willing_o yield_v the_o same_o to_o the_o tormentor_n hand_n then_o he_o be_v clap_v in_o prison_n again_o and_o there_o a_o long_a while_n cruel_o torment_v and_o at_o last_o in_o the_o year_n 306._o strangle_v and_o thereby_o according_a to_o his_o own_o desire_n be_v crown_v with_o martyrdom_n roper_n 537._o george_n roper_n a_o young_a man_n at_o his_o come_n to_o the_o stake_n put_v off_o his_o gown_n fetch_v a_o great_a leap_n so_o soon_o as_o the_o flame_n be_v about_o he_o he_o put_v out_o both_o his_o arm_n from_o his_o body_n like_o a_o rood_n and_o so_o stand_v steadfast_a not_o pluck_v his_o arm_n in_o at_o all_o till_o the_o fire_n have_v consume_v they_o and_o burn_v they_o off_o rough._n 860._o mr._n john_n rough_a a_o famous_a scotch_a minister_n in_o england_n in_o king_n edward_n day_n at_o the_o begin_n of_o queen_n mary_n reign_n flee_v into_o frizeland_n with_o his_o wife_n where_o he_o labour_v for_o his_o live_n in_o knit_v of_o cap_n hose_n etc._n etc._n till_o lack_v of_o yarn_n etc._n etc._n he_o come_v over_o into_o england_n to_o provide_v for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o his_o occupation_n and_o at_o london_n hear_v of_o the_o secret_a society_n and_o holy_a congregation_n of_o god_n child_n there_o assemble_v he_o join_v himself_o unto_o they_o and_o afterward_o be_v elect_v their_o minister_n continue_v for_o some_o time_n in_o fellowship_n with_o they_o teach_v and_o confirm_v they_o in_o the_o truth_n and_o gospel_n of_o christ._n but_o not_o long_o after_o he_o be_v by_o a_o false_a brother_n treachery_n take_v and_o clap_v in_o newgate_n 862._o when_o he_o be_v before_o bonner_n he_o tell_v he_o that_o he_o utter_o detest_v the_o service_n then_o use_v and_o that_o if_o he_o shall_v live_v as_o long_o as_o do_v i_o huselah_o yet_o he_o will_v never_o come_v to_o hear_v the_o abominable_a mass_n and_o other_o service_n be_v as_o it_o be_v then_o dr._n watson_n then_o bishop_n of_o lincoln_n be_v at_o his_o examination_n urge_v that_o he_o have_v do_v more_o hurt_n in_o the_o north_n part_v in_o king_n edward_n day_n than_o a_o hundred_o beside_o etc._n etc._n why_o sir_n say_v mr._n rough_a be_v this_o the_o reward_n i_o have_v for_o save_v your_o life_n in_o those_o day_n he_o say_v he_o have_v live_v thirty_o year_n and_o yet_o have_v never_o bow_v his_o knee_n to_o ball._n before_o bonner_n he_o affirm_v that_o he_o have_v be_v twice_o at_o rome_n and_o there_o have_v see_v plain_o with_o his_o eye_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o very_a antichrist_n for_o he_o see_v more_o reverence_n give_v to_o he_o then_o to_o that_o which_o they_o account_v their_o god_n mr._n rough_a have_v be_v at_o the_o burn_a of_o austoo_n in_o smithfield_n and_o return_v homeward_o again_o meet_v with_o one_o that_o ase_v he_o where_o he_o have_v be_v i_o have_v be_v say_v he_o where_o i_o will_v not_o for_o one_o of_o my_o eye_n but_o i_o have_v be_v where_o have_v you_o be_v reply_v his_o friend_n forsooth_o say_v he_o to_o learn_v the_o way_n and_o so_o he_o tell_v he_o he_o have_v be_v at_o the_o burn_a of_o austoo_n where_o short_o after_o he_o be_v burn_v himself_o in_o his_o letter_n to_o some_o friend_n the_o comfort_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n make_v you_o able_a to_o give_v consolation_n to_o other_o in_o these_o dangerous_a day_n when_o satan_n be_v let_v loose_a but_o to_o the_o trial_n only_o of_o the_o choose_a when_o it_o please_v our_o god_n to_o sift_v his_o wheat_n from_o the_o chaff_n i_o speak_v to_o god_n
unless_o the_o read_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o be_v common_a to_o all_o man_n be_v a_o offence_n more_o than_o this_o i_o know_v not_o the_o bishop_n of_o winchester_n ask_v he_o what_o helper_n he_o have_v in_o set_v forth_o his_o concordance_n none_o my_o lord_n say_v he_o none_o say_v the_o bishop_n how_o can_v that_o be_v it_o be_v not_o possible_a that_o thou_o shall_v do_v it_o without_o help_n true_o my_o lord_n say_v he_o i_o do_v it_o without_o the_o help_n of_o any_o man_n save_v god_n alone_o nay_o say_v the_o bishop_n i_o do_v not_o discommend_v thy_o diligence_n but_o what_o shall_v thou_o meddle_v with_o the_o thing_n which_o pertain_v not_o to_o thou_o and_o then_o speak_v to_o one_o of_o his_o chaplain_n say_v this_o fellow_n have_v take_v upon_o he_o to_o set_v out_o the_o concordance_n in_o english_a which_o book_n when_o it_o be_v set_v out_o in_o latin_a be_v not_o do_v without_o the_o help_n and_o diligence_n of_o a_o dozen_o learned_a man_n at_o least_o and_o yet_o he_o will_v bear_v i_o in_o hand_n that_o he_o have_v do_v it_o alone_o the_o bishop_n of_o salisbury_n ask_v he_o 550._o how_o he_o can_v invent_v such_o a_o book_n or_o know_v what_o a_o concordance_n mean_v without_o a_o instructor_n i_o will_v tell_v your_o lordship_n say_v he_o what_o instructor_n i_o have_v to_o begin_v it_o when_o thomas_n matthews_n bible_n come_v first_o out_o in_o print_n be_v not_o able_a to_o buy_v one_o i_o borrow_v one_o and_o intend_v to_o have_v write_v it_o out_o and_o be_v go_v as_o far_o as_o i●shua_n which_o when_o mr._n turner_n understand_v he_o tell_v i_o it_o will_v be_v a_o more_o profitable_a work_n to_o set_v out_o a_o concordance_n in_o english_a a_o concordance_n say_v i_o what_o be_v that_o he_o tell_v i_o it_o be_v a_o book_n to_o find_v out_o any_o word_n in_o the_o whole_a bible_n by_o the_o letter_n and_o that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o one_o in_o latin_a already_o and_o that_o it_o require_v not_o so_o much_o learning_n as_o diligence_n this_o be_v all_o the_o instruction_n that_o ever_o i_o have_v before_o or_o after_o of_o any_o man_n be_v ask_v how_o he_o can_v with_o this_o instruction_n bring_v it_o to_o this_o order_n and_o form_n as_o it_o be_v he_o answer_v i_o borrow_v 〈◊〉_d latin_a concordance_n and_o begin_v to_o practice_v my_o wit_n and_o at_o last_o with_o great_a labour_n and_o diligence_n bring_v it_o into_o this_o order_n but_o i_o marvel_v great_o why_o i_o shall_v be_v so_o much_o examine_v about_o this_o book_n have_v i_o commit_v any_o offence_n in_o do_v it_o or_o no_o if_o i_o have_v i_o be_o loath_a any_o other_o shall_v be_v molest_v or_o punish_v for_o my_o fault_n therefore_o to_o clear_v all_o man_n in_o this_o matter_n this_o be_v my_o request_n that_o you_o will_v try_v i_o in_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o book_n that_o be_v undo_v you_o see_v i_o have_v only_o do_v with_o letter_n l._n now_o take_v what_o word_n you_o will_v of_o m._n and_o so_o in_o every_o letter_n follow_v and_o give_v i_o the_o word_n in_o a_o piece_n of_o paper_n and_o let_v i_o be_v any_o where_o alone_a with_o pen_n ink_n and_o paper_n the_o latin_a concordance_n and_o the_o english_a bible_n and_o if_o i_o bring_v you_o not_o those_o word_n write_v in_o the_o same_o order_n and_o form_n as_o the_o rest_n be_v than_o it_o be_v not_o i_o do_v it_o but_o some_o other_o this_o be_v honest_o speak_v say_v the_o bishop_n of_o ely_n and_o then_o shall_v thou_o bring_v many_o out_o of_o suspicion_n according_o he_o write_v in_o a_o day_n time_n in_o the_o same_o order_n and_o form_n as_o he_o have_v do_v the_o rest_n all_o the_o word_n they_o give_v he_o which_o contain_v three_o sheet_n of_o paper_n and_o more_o 5●●_n be_v threaten_v if_o he_o do_v not_o discover_v what_o he_o know_v his_o finger_n shall_v be_v make_v to_o tell_v if_o you_o do_v tear_v say_v he_o the_o whole_a body_n in_o piece_n i_o trust_v in_o god_n you_o shall_v never_o make_v i_o accuse_v any_o man_n wrongful_o if_o thou_o be_v stubborn_a say_v dr._n ok_v thou_o will_v die_v for_o it_o die_v for_o it_o say_v marbeck_n wherefore_o shall_v i_o die_v you_o tell_v i_o the_o last_o day_n before_o the_o bishop_n that_o as_o soon_o as_o i_o have_v make_v a_o end_n of_o that_o piece_n of_o the_o concordance_n they_o take_v i_o i_o shall_v be_v deliver_v and_o shall_v i_o now_o die_v this_o be_v a_o sudden_a mutation_n you_o seem_v then_o to_o be_v my_o friend_n but_o i_o know_v the_o cause_n you_o have_v read_v the_o ballad_n i_o make_v of_o moses_n chair_n and_o that_o have_v set_v you_o against_o i_o but_o whensoever_o you_o shall_v put_v i_o to_o death_n i_o doubt_v not_o but_o i_o shall_v die_v god_n true_a man_n and_o the_o king_n this_o worthy_a confessor_n be_v of_o so_o sweet_a and_o amiable_a nature_n 91._o that_o all_o good_a man_n do_v love_v and_o few_o bad_a man_n do_v hate_v he_o yet_o be_v he_o condemn_v in_o the_o year_n 1544._o to_o be_v burn_v at_o windsor_n which_o his_o pardon_n prevent_v of_o which_o divers_a cause_n be_v assign_v 1_o that_o bishop_n gardner_n bear_v he_o a_o special_a affection_n for_o his_o skill_n in_o the_o mystery_n of_o music_n 2_o that_o such_o who_o condemn_v he_o procure_v his_o pardon_n out_o of_o remorse_n of_o conscience_n because_o of_o the_o slender_a evidence_n against_o he_o 3_o that_o it_o be_v do_v out_o of_o design_n to_o reserve_v he_o for_o a_o discovery_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o party_n and_o if_o so_o their_o plot_n fail_v they_o for_o be_v as_o true_a as_o steel_n whereof_o his_o fetter_n be_v make_v which_o he_o wear_v in_o prison_n for_o a_o good_a time_n he_o can_v not_o be_v fright_v or_o flatter_v to_o make_v any_o detection_n marcus_n v_o arethusius_n part._n 1._o marcus_z of_o arethuse_n be_v hang_v up_o in_o a_o basket_n 142._o anoint_v with_o honey_n and_o so_o expose_v to_o the_o sting_a of_o wasp_n and_o bee_n say_v to_o his_o persecutor_n that_o stand_v and_o behold_v he_o how_o be_o i_o advance_v despise_v you_o that_o be_v below_o on_o earth_n marlorate_v mr._n augustine_n marlorate_v 25._o minister_n of_o rouen_n when_o in_o the_o civil_a war_n of_o france_n that_o city_n be_v take_v by_o storm_n be_v take_v also_o and_o bring_v before_o mon●orency_n the_o constable_n of_o france_n who_o say_v unto_o he_o thou_o be_v he_o who_o have_v seduce_v the_o people_n if_o i_o have_v seduce_v they_o say_v he_o it_o be_v god_n that_o have_v do_v it_o rather_o than_o i_o for_o i_o have_v preach_v nothing_o to_o they_o but_o his_o divine_a truth_n you_o be_v a_o seditious_a person_n say_v the_o constable_n and_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o ruin_n of_o this_o city_n as_o for_o that_o imputation_n say_v he_o i_o refer_v myself_o to_o all_o that_o have_v hear_v i_o preach_v be_v they_o papist_n or_o protestant_n whether_o i_o ever_o meddle_v with_o matter_n of_o the_o politic_a state_n or_o no._n the_o constable_n tell_v he_o swear_v a_o great_a oath_n we_o shall_v see_v within_o a_o few_o day_n whether_o thy_o god_n can_v deliver_v thou_o out_o of_o my_o hand_n or_o no._n 577._o it_o be_v observable_a how_o speedy_o god_n judgement_n find_v out_o his_o persecutor_n the_o captain_n that_o apprehend_v he_o be_v slay_v within_o three_o week_n by_o one_o of_o the_o base_a sou●diers_n in_o all_o his_o company_n the_o constable_n son_n be_v short_o after_o slay_v in_o the_o battle_n of_o dreux_n two_o of_o his_o judge_n also_o die_v very_o strange_o soon_o after_o viz._n the_o precedent_n of_o the_o parliament_n by_o a_o flux_n of_o blood_n which_o can_v be_v by_o no_o mean_n staunch_v the_o other_o be_v a_o councillor_n void_v his_o urine_n by_o his_o fundament_n with_o such_o a_o intolerable_a stink_n that_o none_o can_v come_v near_o he_o villeben_n that_o switch_v he_o with_o a_o wand_n as_o he_o be_v carry_v on_o the_o hurdle_n to_o execution_n a_o while_n after_o escape_v death_n by_o the_o loss_n of_o his_o hand_n wherewith_o he_o have_v so_o base_o smite_v this_o servant_n of_o the_o lord_n marsake_v 141._o sir_n l●wis_n marsake_v be_v so_o glad_a of_o the_o sentence_n of_o condemnation_n that_o he_o go_v out_o praise_v god_n and_o sing_v of_o psalm_n to_o a_o soldier_n that_o will_v have_v hinder_v he_o from_o step_v aside_o to_o call_v upon_o god_n what_o say_v he_o will_v you_o not_o let_v we_o pray_v in_o that_o little_a time_n which_o we_o have_v when_o halter_n be_v put_v about_o the_o neck_n of_o his_o two_o fellow-sufferer_n he_o see_v himself_o to_o be_v spare_v because_o of_o his_o order_n and_o degree_n call_v to_o the_o lieutenant_n
for_o one_o of_o those_o precious_a chain_n about_o his_o neck_n in_o honour_n of_o his_o lord_n why_o i_o pray_v you_o say_v he_o do_v you_o deny_v i_o the_o badge_n of_o so_o excellent_a a_o order_n 315._o be_v not_o my_o cause_n the_o same_o with_o they_o marsh._n mr._n george_n marsh_n 224._o minister_n in_o lancashire_n write_v thus_o concern_v his_o trouble_n my_o friend_n and_o relation_n advise_v i_o to_o flee_v if_o i_o be_v take_v say_v they_o and_o will_v not_o recant_v as_o they_o think_v i_o will_v not_o and_o god_n strengthen_v and_o assist_v i_o never_o shall_v it_o will_v not_o only_o put_v they_o to_o great_a sorrow_n and_o loss_n and_o shame_n but_o also_o myself_o after_o trouble_n and_o painful_a imprisonment_n unto_o shameful_a death_n to_o their_o counsel_n my_o weak_a flesh_n will_v glad_o have_v consent_v but_o my_o spirit_n do_v not_o full_o agree_v think_v and_o say_v thus_o unto_o myself_o that_o if_o i_o so_o flee_v away_o it_o will_v be_v think_v and_o report_v that_o i_o do_v not_o only_o flee_v my_o country_n and_o near_o and_o dear_a friend_n but_o from_o christ_n holy_a word_n of_o late_a year_n within_o my_o heart_n or_o at_o least_o with_o my_o life_n profess_v and_o with_o my_o mou●h_n teach_v i_o know_v not_o what_o to_o do_v but_o cease_v not_o by_o earnest_a prayer_n to_o ask_v and_o seek_v counsel_n of_o god_n a●●_n of_o other_o my_o friend_n who_o godly_a judgement_n and_o knowledge_n i_o much_o trust_v to_o still_o i_o be_v undetermined_a what_o to_o do_v but_o tell_v a_o friend_n that_o have_v pray_v with_o i_o for_o direction_n i_o doubt_v not_o but_o god_n according_a as_o our_o prayer_n and_o trust_n be_v will_v give_v i_o such_o wisdom_n and_o counsel_n as_o shall_v be_v most_o to_o his_o honour_n and_o glory_n the_o profit_n of_o my_o neighbour_n and_o brethren_n and_o my_o own_o eternal_a salvation_n by_o christ_n in_o heaven_n at_o length_n one_o come_v to_o i_o with_o letter_n from_o a_o faithful_a friend_n which_o i_o never_o read_v nor_o look_v on_o who_o say_v thus_o my_o friend_n advice_n be_v that_o i_o shall_v in_o no_o wise_n flee_v but_o abide_v and_o bold_o confess_v the_o faith_n of_o jesus_n christ._n at_o which_o word_n i_o be_v so_o confirm_v and_o establish_v in_o my_o conscience_n that_o from_o thenceforth_o i_o consult_v no_o more_o whether_o it_o be_v better_a to_o flee_v or_o to_o tarry_v but_o be_v at_o a_o point_n with_o myself_o that_o i_o will_v not_o flee_v but_o go_v to_o mr._n barton_n who_o do_v seek_v i_o and_o patient_o bear_v what_o cross_n it_o shall_v please_v god_n to_o lay_v upon_o i_o whereupow_n my_o mind_n and_o conscience_n be_v much_o trouble_v before_o be_v now_o merry_a and_o in_o quiet_a state_n thereupon_o i_o go_v to_o mr._n barton_n he_o show_v i_o a_o letter_n from_o the_o earl_n of_o derby_n wherein_o he_o be_v command_v to_o send_v i_o to_o lathum_fw-la thither_o i_o go_v the_o earl_n ask_v i_o whether_o i_o be_v one_o that_o sow_v dissension_n among_o the_o people_n i_o deny_v it_o and_o desire_v to_o know_v my_o accuser_n but_o that_o can_v not_o be_v grant_v he_o ask_v i_o whether_o i_o be_v a_o priest_n i_o say_v 225._o no_o but_o a_o minister_n etc._n etc._n i_o be_v ask_v whether_o i_o have_v minister_v with_o a_o good_a conscience_n i_o answer_v i_o have_v minister_v one_o year_n with_o a_o good_a conscience_n i_o thank_v god_n and_o if_o the_o law_n of_o the_o realm_n will_v have_v suffer_v i_o i_o will_v have_v minister_v still_o and_o if_o the_o law_n at_o any_o time_n hereafter_o will_v suffer_v i_o to_o minister_v after_o that_o sort_n i_o will_v minister_v again_o the_o vicar_n of_o prescot_n have_v commune_v with_o i_o a_o good_a while_n concern_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n tell_v my_o lord_n and_o his_o council_n that_o the_o answer_n which_o i_o have_v make_v before_o and_o then_o make_v be_v sufficient_a for_o a_o beginner_n and_o one_o that_o do_v not_o profess_v a_o perfect_a knowledge_n in_o that_o matter_n and_o thereupon_o i_o have_v more_o favour_n hereupon_o i_o be_v much_o more_o trouble_a in_o my_o spirit_n then_o before_o because_o i_o have_v not_o with_o more_o boldness_n confess_v christ_n but_o in_o such_o sort_n as_o my_o adversary_n thereby_o think_v they_o shall_v prevail_v against_o i_o hitherto_o i_o go_v about_o as_o much_o as_o lay_v in_o i_o to_o rid_v myself_o out_o of_o their_o hand_n if_o by_o any_o mean_n without_o open_a deny_v of_o christ_n and_o his_o word_n that_o can_v be_v do_v this_o consider_v i_o cry_v more_o earnest_o to_o god_n to_o strengthen_v i_o with_o his_o holy_a spirit_n with_o boldness_n to_o confess_v he_o and_o to_o deliver_v i_o from_o their_o entice_a word_n and_o that_o i_o may_v not_o be_v spoil_v through_o their_o philosophy_n and_o deceitful_a vanity_n after_o the_o tradition_n of_o man_n and_o ordinance_n of_o the_o world_n and_o not_o after_o christ._n 226._o the_o vicar_n of_o prescot_n and_o parson_n of_o grapnal_a much_o exhort_v i_o to_o leave_v my_o opinion_n say_v i_o be_v much_o deceive_v understand_v the_o scripture_n amiss_o and_o much_o counsel_v i_o to_o follow_v the_o catholic_n church_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o do_v as_o other_o do_v i_o answer_v my_o faith_n in_o christ_n conceive_v by_o his_o holy_a word_n i_o neither_o may_v nor_o will_v deny_v alter_v or_o change_v for_o any_o live_a creature_n whatso●u●r_o ●e_n be_v afterward_o mr._n sherburn_n and_o mr._n m●●r_v persuade_v i_o to_o leave_v my_o opinion_n because_o of_o the_o adversity_n of_o the_o maintainer_n of_o they_o and_o the_o prosperity_n of_o the_o favourer_n of_o the_o religion_n now_o use_v i_o answer_v that_o i_o believe_v and_o lean_v only_o to_o the_o scripture_n not_o judge_v thing_n by_o prosperity_n or_o adversity_n they_o advise_v i_o not_o to_o let_v shame_n hinder_v i_o from_o renounce_v my_o opinion_n i_o answer_v that_o what_o i_o do_v i_o do_v not_o for_o the_o avoid_n of_o any_o worldly_a shame_n say_v my_o soul_n and_o life_n be_v dear_a to_o i_o than_o the_o avoid_n of_o any_o worldly_a shame_n neither_o yet_o do_v i_o it_o for_o any_o vain_a praise_n of_o the_o world_n but_o in_o the_o reverend_a fear_n of_o the_o lord_n mr._n sherburn_n tell_v i_o that_o it_o be_v great_a pity_n i_o shall_v cast_v myself_o away_o etc._n etc._n i_o answer_v that_o my_o life_n mother_n child_n brethren_n sister_n and_o friend_n with_o other_o delight_n of_o this_o life_n be_v as_o dear_a and_o sweet_a to_o i_o as_o unto_o any_o other_o man_n and_o that_o i_o shall_v be_v as_o loath_a to_o lose_v they_o as_o another_o will_v if_o i_o may_v hold_v they_o with_o a_o good_a conscience_n and_o without_o the_o ignominy_n of_o christ._n but_o see_v i_o can_v not_o do_v that_o my_o trust_n be_v that_o god_n will_v strengthen_v i_o with_o his_o holy_a spirit_n to_o lose_v they_o all_o for_o his_o sake_n for_o i_o take_v myself_o say_v i_o for_o a_o sheep_n appoint_v to_o be_v slay_v patient_o to_o suffer_v what_o cross_n soever_o it_o shall_v please_v my_o merciful_a father_n to_o lay_v upon_o i_o 227._o after_o this_o mr._n moor_n tell_v i_o i_o be_v unlearned_a and_o err_v from_o the_o catholic_n faith_n stubborn_a and_o stand_v altogether_o in_o my_o own_o conceit_n i_o answer_v for_o my_o learning_n i_o acknowledge_v myself_o to_o know_v nothing_o but_o jesus_n christ_n even_o he_o that_o be_v crucify_v and_o that_o my_o faith_n be_v ground_v on_o god_n holy_a word_n only_o and_o such_o as_o i_o doubt_v not_o please_v god_n and_o as_o i_o will_v stand_v in_o to_o the_o last_o god_n assist_v i_o and_o that_o i_o do_v not_o say_v or_o do_v any_o thing_n of_o stubbornness_n self-wilfulness_n vainglory_n or_o any_o other_o worldly_a purpose_n but_o with_o good_a conscience_n and_o in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n desire_v he_o to_o speak_v to_o my_o lord_n and_o his_o council_n that_o i_o may_v find_v some_o mercy_n at_o their_o hand_n but_o he_o give_v i_o but_o short_a answer_n than_o i_o say_v i_o commit_v my_o cause_n to_o god_n who_o have_v number_v the_o hair_n of_o my_o head_n and_o appoint_v the_o day_n of_o my_o life_n say_v i_o be_o sure_a god_n who_o be_v a_o righteous_a judge_n will_v make_v inquisition_n for_o my_o blood_n according_a as_o he_o have_v promise_v i_o desire_v the_o reader_n of_o this_o relation_n to_o pray_v for_o i_o and_o all_o they_o that_o be_v in_o bond_n that_o god_n will_v assist_v we_o with_o his_o holy_a spirit_n that_o we_o may_v with_o boldness_n confess_v his_o holy_a name_n 228._o and_o that_o christ_n may_v be_v magnify_v in_o our_o body_n that_o we_o may_v stand_v full_a and_o perfect_a
hear_v i_o patient_o see_v i_o be_o appoint_v to_o die_v and_o look_v daily_a when_o i_o shall_v be_v call_v to_o come_v before_o the_o eternal_a judge_n and_o therefore_o you_o can_v think_v but_o that_o i_o only_o study_v to_o serve_v my_o lord_n god_n and_o to_o say_v that_o thing_n which_o i_o be_o persuade_v assure_o by_o god_n word_n shall_v and_o do_v please_v he_o and_o profit_n all_o to_o who_o god_n shall_v give_v grace_n to_o hear_v and_o believe_v what_o i_o do_v say_v if_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o be_v own_v how_o chance_v it_o that_o you_o be_v all_o my_o lord_n so_o light_a as_o for_o your_o prince_n pleasure_n h._n 8._o and_o e._n 6._o which_o be_v but_o mortal_a man_n to_o forsake_v the_o unity_n of_o your_o catholic_n faith_n i._n e._n to_o forsake_v christ_n and_o his_o gospel_n how_o chance_v it_o also_o that_o you_o and_o the_o whole_a parliament_n do_v not_o only_o abolish_v and_o expel_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n but_o also_o do_v abjure_v he_o in_o your_o own_o person_n and_o do_v decree_n in_o your_o act_n great_a oath_n to_o be_v take_v for_o that_o purpose_n on_o the_o other_o side_n if_o the_o law_n and_o decree_n which_o make_v the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o see_v and_o bishop_n of_o rome_n over_o the_o universal_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o thing_n of_o necessity_n require_v unto_o salvation_n by_o a_o antichristian_a law_n as_o it_o be_v indeed_o then_o my_o lord_n never_o think_v other_o but_o the_o day_n shall_v come_v when_o you_o shall_v be_v charge_v with_o this_o your_o undo_n that_o which_o once_o you_o have_v well_o do_v and_o with_o this_o your_o perjury_n and_o breach_n of_o your_o oath_n which_o oath_n be_v do_v in_o judgement_n justice_n and_o truth_n agreeable_a to_o god_n law_n the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n may_v for_o a_o time_n dally_v with_o you_o and_o make_v you_o so_o drunken_a with_o the_o wine_n of_o her_o filthy_a stew_n and_o whoredom_n as_o with_o her_o dispensation_n and_o promise_n of_o pardon_n a_o poena_fw-la &_o culpa_fw-la that_o you_o may_v think_v yourselves_o safe_a but_o be_v you_o assure_v when_o the_o live_a lord_n shall_v try_v the_o matter_n by_o fire_n and_o judge_v it_o according_a to_o his_o word_n unless_o you_o repent_v without_o all_o doubt_n you_o shall_v never_o escape_v the_o hand_n of_o the_o live_a god_n for_o the_o guilt_n of_o your_o perjury_n and_o breach_n of_o your_o oath_n then_o shall_v you_o drink_v of_o the_o cup_n of_o the_o lord_n indignation_n and_o everlasting_a wrath_n which_o be_v prepare_v for_o the_o beast_n his_o false_a prophet_n and_o all_o their_o partaker_n for_o he_o that_o be_v partner_n with_o they_o in_o their_o whoredom_n and_o abomination_n must_v also_o be_v partner_n with_o they_o in_o their_o plague_n and_o be_v throw_v with_o they_o into_o the_o lake_n burn_v with_o brimstone_n and_o unquenchable_a fire_n in_o his_o letter_n to_o the_o prisoner_n etc._n etc._n and_o exile_v for_o the_o fervent_a love_n that_o the_o apostle_n have_v unto_o their_o master_n christ_n 512._o and_o for_o the_o great_a commodity_n and_o increase_n of_o all_o godliness_n which_o they_o feel_v by_o their_o faith_n to_o ensue_v of_o affliction_n in_o christ_n cause_n and_o three_o for_o the_o heap_n of_o heavenly_a joy_n which_o the_o same_o do_v get_v unto_o the_o godly_a which_o shall_v endure_v in_o heaven_n for_o evermore_o for_o these_o cause_n they_o rejoice_v that_o they_o be_v account_v worthy_a to_o suffer_v contumely_n and_o rebuke_n for_o christ_n name_n and_o paul_n be_v so_o much_o in_o love_n in_o that_o which_o the_o carnal_a man_n loathe_v so_o much_o i._n e._n with_o christ_n cross_n that_o he_o judge_v himself_o to_o know_v nothing_o else_o but_o christ_n crucify_v he_o glory_v in_o nothing_o else_o but_o christ_n cross._n 513._o why_o shall_v we_o christian_n fear_v death_n can_v death_n deprive_v we_o of_o christ_n who_o be_v all_o our_o comfort_n our_o joy_n and_o our_o life_n nay_o forsooth_o but_o on_o the_o contrary_a death_n shall_v deliver_v we_o from_o this_o mortal_a body_n which_o load_v and_o bear_v down_o the_o spirit_n that_o it_o can_v so_o well_o perceive_v heavenly_a thing_n in_o the_o which_o so_o long_o as_o we_o dwell_v we_o be_v absent_a from_o the_o lord_n and_o who_o that_o have_v a_o right_a knowledge_n of_o christ_n our_o saviour_n that_o he_o be_v the_o eternal_a son_n of_o god_n life_n light_n the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o father_n all_o goodness_n all_o righteousness_n and_o whatsoever_o heart_n can_v desire_v yea_o infinite_a plenty_n of_o all_o these_o above_z that_o that_o man_n heart_n can_v conceive_v or_o imagine_v for_o in_o he_o dwell_v the_o fullness_n of_o the_o godhead_n bodily_a and_o also_o that_o he_o be_v give_v we_o of_o the_o father_n and_o make_v of_o god_n to_o be_v our_o wisdom_n our_o righteousness_n our_o holiness_n and_o our_o redemption_n who_o i_o say_v be_v that_o believe_v this_o indeed_o that_o will_v not_o glad_o be_v with_o his_o master_n christ_n to_o die_v in_o the_o defence_n of_o christ_n gospel_n be_v our_o bind_a duty_n to_o christ_n and_o also_o to_o our_o neighbour_n to_o christ_n for_o he_o die_v for_o we_o and_o rise_v that_o he_o may_v be_v lord_n of_o all_o and_o see_v he_o die_v for_o we_o we_o also_o say_v st._n john_n 1_o joh._n 3._o shall_v jeopard_v yea_o give_v our_o life_n for_o the_o brethren_n farewell_n dear_a brethren_n farewell_o 514._o and_o let_v we_o comfort_v our_o heart_n in_o all_o trouble_n and_o in_o death_n with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o heaven_n and_o earth_n shall_v perish_v but_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n endure_v for_o ever_o in_o his_o lamentation_n for_o the_o change_n of_o religion_n in_o england_n of_o late_o in_o every_o congregation_n throughout_o all_o england_n be_v make_v prayer_n and_o petition_n unto_o god_n to_o be_v deliver_v from_o the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o all_o his_o detestable_a enormity_n from_o all_o false_a doctrine_n and_o heresy_n and_o now_o alas_o satan_n have_v persuade_v england_n by_o his_o falsehood_n and_o craft_n to_o revoke_v her_o old_a godly_a prayer_n etc._n etc._n this_o be_v one_o maxim_n and_o principle_n in_o christ_n law_n 518._o he_o that_o deny_v christ_n before_o man_n he_o shall_v christ_n deny_v before_o his_o father_n and_o all_o his_o holy_a angel_n in_o heaven_n now_o then_o see_v the_o doctrine_n of_o antichrist_n be_v return_v again_o into_o this_o realm_n and_o the_o high_a power_n alas_o be_v so_o deceive_v and_o bewitch_v that_o they_o be_v persuade_v it_o to_o be_v truth_n and_o christ_n true_a doctrine_n to_o be_v error_n and_o heresy_n and_o the_o old_a law_n of_o anticrist_n be_v allow_v to_o return_v with_o the_o power_n of_o their_o father_n again_o what_o can_v be_v hereafter_o look_v for_o of_o christian_n abide_v in_o this_o realm_n but_o extreme_a violence_n of_o death_n or_o else_o to_o deny_v their_o master_n therefore_o prepare_v and_o arm_v thyself_o to_o die_v for_o both_o by_o antichrist_n accustomable_a law_n and_o scripture_n prophecy_n there_o be_v no_o likelihood_n of_o any_o other_o thing_n except_o thou_o will_v deny_v thy_o master_n christ_n which_o be_v the_o loss_n at_o the_o last_o of_o body_n and_o soul_n unto_o everlasting_a death_n my_o counsel_n to_o such_o as_o be_v yet_o at_o liberty_n be_v to_o fly_v from_o the_o plague_n and_o get_v they_o hence_o i_o consider_v not_o only_o the_o subtlety_n of_o satan_n and_o how_o he_o be_v like_a to_o deceive_v it_o it_o be_v possible_a even_o the_o choose_a of_o god_n and_o also_o the_o great_a frailty_n which_o be_v oftentimes_o more_o in_o a_o man_n than_o he_o do_v know_v in_o himself_o and_o which_o in_o the_o time_n of_o temptation_n will_v utter_v itself_o but_o also_o the_o example_n of_o christ_n paul_n elias_n etc._n etc._n and_o christ_n say_v when_o they_o persecute_v you_o in_o one_o city_n fly_v unto_o another_o true_o before_o god_n i_o think_v that_o the_o abomination_n that_o daniel_n prophesy_v of_o so_o long_o before_o be_v now_o set_v up_o in_o the_o holy_a place_n the_o doctrine_n of_o antichrist_n his_o law_n rite_n and_o religion_n contrary_a to_o christ_n and_o to_o the_o true_a serve_v and_o worship_v of_o god_n i_o understand_v to_o be_v that_o abominition_n therefore_o now_o be_v the_o time_n in_o england_n for_o those_o word_n of_o christ_n then_o say_v christ_n they_o that_o be_v in_o jewry_n let_v they_o fly_v into_o the_o mountain_n than_o say_v he_o mark_v this_o then_o for_o true_o i_o be_o persuade_v and_o i_o trust_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n that_o this_o then_o be_v command_v by_o those_o in_o jewry_n i_o understand_v such_o who_o true_o confess_v one_o live_v god_n and_o the_o